summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
path: root/20880-h
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authorRoger Frank <rfrank@pglaf.org>2025-10-15 01:30:00 -0700
committerRoger Frank <rfrank@pglaf.org>2025-10-15 01:30:00 -0700
commit6b0324769ff848f7d2842eddfa8ce7c623842461 (patch)
treef5caf7e29a42282c9cbed09ca964d3ae18821f29 /20880-h
initial commit of ebook 20880HEADmain
Diffstat (limited to '20880-h')
-rw-r--r--20880-h/20880-h.htm8081
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img001.jpgbin0 -> 106328 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img001bg.jpgbin0 -> 358720 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img002.jpgbin0 -> 100526 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img002bg.jpgbin0 -> 428611 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img003.jpgbin0 -> 41624 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img004.jpgbin0 -> 51732 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img005.jpgbin0 -> 32732 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img006.jpgbin0 -> 32779 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img007.jpgbin0 -> 36058 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img008.jpgbin0 -> 36155 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img009.jpgbin0 -> 69907 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img010.jpgbin0 -> 65662 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img011.jpgbin0 -> 56163 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img012.jpgbin0 -> 50464 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img013.jpgbin0 -> 49344 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img014.jpgbin0 -> 58028 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img015.jpgbin0 -> 53708 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img016.jpgbin0 -> 44540 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img017.jpgbin0 -> 62732 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img017bg.jpgbin0 -> 261454 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img018.jpgbin0 -> 36773 bytes
-rw-r--r--20880-h/images/img019.jpgbin0 -> 40801 bytes
23 files changed, 8081 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/20880-h/20880-h.htm b/20880-h/20880-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..b8b3aed
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/20880-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,8081 @@
+<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD HTML 4.01 Transitional//EN">
+<html>
+
+<head>
+<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=iso-8859-1">
+<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Story of Russia Author: R. Van Bergen, M.A.</title>
+
+
+<style type="text/css">
+<!--
+
+body {font-size: 1em; text-align: justify; margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 5%;}
+
+h1 {font-size: 140%; text-align: center; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 2em;}
+h2 {font-size: 130%; text-align: center; margin-top: 4em; margin-bottom: 2em;}
+h3 {font-size: 130%; text-align: center; margin-top: 4em; margin-bottom: 1em;}
+h4 {font-size: 1em; text-align: center; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 1em;}
+h5 {font-size: 1em; text-align: center; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 2em;}
+
+a {text-decoration: none;}
+
+ul {list-style-type: upper-roman}
+
+.p2 {margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 1em;}
+
+.pagenum {visibility: hidden; position: absolute; right:0;
+ font-size: 0.8em; text-align: right;
+ color: #C0C0C0; background-color: inherit;}
+
+.smcap {font-variant: small-caps; font-size: 95%;}
+
+.col50 {margin-left: 50%;}
+
+.left05 {margin-left: 05%;}
+
+.figcenter {text-align: center;}
+
+-->
+</style>
+
+</head>
+
+<body>
+
+
+<pre>
+
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Story of Russia, by R. Van Bergen
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: The Story of Russia
+
+Author: R. Van Bergen
+
+Release Date: March 23, 2007 [EBook #20880]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE STORY OF RUSSIA ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Barbara Tozier, Bill Tozier, Christine P.
+Travers and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
+http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+
+
+
+
+</pre>
+
+
+
+<p>[Transcriber's note: Obvious printer's errors have been corrected.
+Author's spelling has been maintained.]</p>
+
+
+<a id="img001" name="img001"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<a href="images/img001bg.jpg">
+<img src="images/img001.jpg" width="600" height="459" alt="Map" title="Map"></a>
+</div>
+
+
+<h1>THE STORY OF RUSSIA</h1>
+
+<h4>BY</h4>
+
+<h3>R. VAN BERGEN, M.A.</h3>
+
+<h5><span class="smcap">AUTHOR OF "THE STORY OF JAPAN," "THE STORY OF CHINA," ETC.</span></h5>
+
+<p class="figcenter">NEW YORK-:-CINCINNATI-:-CHICAGO<br>
+AMERICAN BOOK COMPANY</p>
+
+
+<p class="figcenter"><span class="smcap">Copyright</span>, 1905,<br>
+<span class="smcap">By</span> AMERICAN BOOK COMPANY</p>
+
+<p class="figcenter">Entered at Stationers' Hall, London</p>
+
+<p class="figcenter"><span class="smcap">Story of Russia</span><br>
+
+W. P. 2.</p>
+
+
+<h3>To<br>
+HENRY MATHER LOWMAN<br>
+<span class="smcap">amicus certus re incerta cernitur.</span></h3>
+
+
+
+
+
+<h2>PREFACE.</h2>
+
+
+<p>Recent events have drawn the attention upon Russia, a country of which
+but little is known here, because the intercourse between it and the
+United States has been limited. In my frequent journeys to the Far
+East, I found it often difficult to comprehend events because, while I
+could not help perceiving that the impulse leading to them came from
+Russia, it was impossible to discover what prompted the government of
+the czar. I felt the necessity to study the history of Russia, and
+found it so fascinating, that I resolved to place it in a condensed
+form before the students in our schools. They must be the judges of
+how I have succeeded.</p>
+
+<p class="col50"><span class="smcap">R. Van Bergen</span>.</p>
+
+
+
+<h2>CONTENTS.</h2>
+
+
+<p>CHAPTER</p>
+
+<ul><li><a href="#page013"><span class="smcap">The Realm of the Czar</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page023"><span class="smcap">Early Records of Russia</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page029"><span class="smcap">The Norsemen</span> (or <span class="smcap">Varingians) in Russia</span></a></li>
+
+
+<li><a href="#page041"><span class="smcap">Saint Vladimir and Iaroslaf the Great</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page049"><span class="smcap">A Russian Republic</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page057"><span class="smcap">Troublous Times</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page063"><span class="smcap">The Yellow Peril</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page071"><span class="smcap">Russia Under the Mongol Yoke</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page079"><span class="smcap">Lithuania and Moscow</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page087"><span class="smcap">Decline of the Tartar Power. Dmitri Donskoï</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page097"><span class="smcap">Ivan III, the Great</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page106"><span class="smcap">Russia becomes an Autocracy</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page111"><span class="smcap">Ivan IV, the Terrible</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page122"><span class="smcap">Russia Under Ivan the Terrible</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page129"><span class="smcap">Feodor, the Last of Rurik's Descendants</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page137"><span class="smcap">Michael Feodorovitch (Son of Theodore) the First Romanof</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page145"><span class="smcap">Early Years of Peter the Great (Peter Alexievitch)</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page153"><span class="smcap">Peter the Great and His Reign</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page162"><span class="smcap">Peter the Great and His Time</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page173"><span class="smcap">The Successors of Peter the Great</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page183"><span class="smcap">Russia Under Catherine II (the Great)</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page194"><span class="smcap">Russia During the Wars of Napoleon</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page208"><span class="smcap">An Eventful Period</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page219"><span class="smcap">Alexander II, the Liberator</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page229"><span class="smcap">Great Events During Alexander's Reign Nihilism</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page241"><span class="smcap">Alexander III, the Peasants' Friend</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page251"><span class="smcap">Russia Methods: The War with Japan</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page259"><span class="smcap">The Origin and Growth of The Asiatic Empire</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page267"><span class="smcap">Russian Methods. The War with Japan</span></a></li>
+
+<li><a href="#page277"><span class="smcap">Russia Loses her Prestige</span></a></li>
+</ul>
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+<h2>THE STORY OF RUSSIA.</h2>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>I&mdash;THE REALM OF THE CZAR. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page013" name="page013"></a>(p. 013)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>When we think of our country, we feel proud of it for other and better
+reasons than its great size. We know how its extent compares with that
+of other nations; we know that the United States covers an area almost
+equal to that of Europe, and, more favored than that Grand Division,
+is situated on the two great highways of commerce, the Atlantic and
+Pacific Oceans. Europe is as far from the latter, as Asia is from the
+former; and these highways, powerful means toward creating prosperity,
+remain at the same time barriers whereby nations that find greater
+delight in the arts of war than in those of peace, are restrained from
+disturbing our national progress.</p>
+
+<p>At the beginning of this twentieth century the nations upon which
+depends the world's peace or war, happiness or misfortune, are the
+United States, Great Britain, Germany, France, Austria-Hungary, Italy,
+Russia, Japan, and in the near future China. Here we see that Europe,
+although little larger in area than the United States, is represented
+by seven nations, Asia by two, and the Western Hemisphere by one which
+by its institutions stands <span class="pagenum"><a id="page014" name="page014"></a>(p. 014)</span> for peace and progress, for law
+and order. Hence we, its citizens, are known all over the world as
+Americans.</p>
+
+<p>If we compare the area occupied by the several European powers with
+that covered by the main body of our republic, that is, not including
+Alaska and other outlying territories, we find that Austria-Hungary
+has four thousand square miles less than Texas, while Germany lacks
+forty thousand square miles in comparison with the Lone Star State.
+France is four thousand square miles less than Germany, and Italy is
+only a thousand square miles greater than Nevada. The British Kingdom
+in Europe is about twice the area of Illinois. Among the great nations
+of the world, aside from outlying possessions beyond the Grand
+Division, our country stands third, and should occupy the second
+place, because China, the next larger, owes its greater area to
+territories over which she has little or no control, and which she
+seems destined to lose.</p>
+
+<p>The largest country is Russia, covering as it does one-sixth of all
+the land on the earth. This empire, although inhabited by people
+differing in race, religion, and customs, is one compact whole. It
+embraces in Europe 2,113,000 square miles, or more than all other
+European nations combined; its area in Asia is 6,672,000 square miles,
+making a total of 8,785,000 square miles, or 2.8 times as many as the
+main body of our country. All the people living in this immense
+empire, whatever their race, religion, or language, obey the will of
+<i>one man</i>. We, who dwell in our beloved country, yield obedience only
+to the Law; but the laws are made by ourselves, and they <span class="pagenum"><a id="page015" name="page015"></a>(p. 015)</span>
+allow us to do as we please, so long as we do not interfere with
+others who have the same rights; and those laws are ever ready to
+protect us. In Russia laws are made or unmade at the will of one
+person who is himself above the laws. Every man, woman, or child, born
+and living in that country, is at his mercy. Mere suspicion is
+sufficient to drag a man from his family and home, perhaps to
+disappear without leaving a trace. Such a government is called an
+autocracy, and the man who may thus dispose of people's life and
+property, is known as an Autocrat. Hence the title of the Emperor of
+Russia is: Autocrat of All the Russias.</p>
+
+<p>Why "All the Russias"? Look at the map of Eurasia, the continent
+embracing the two Grand Divisions Europe and Asia. You will see that
+the Russian Empire is bounded on the north by the Arctic Ocean; on the
+east by the Bering Strait, the Bering Sea, the Sea of Okhotsk, and the
+Japan Sea; on the south by China, Pamir, Afghanistan, Persia, Asiatic
+Turkey, and the Black Sea; and on the west by Roumania,
+Austria-Hungary, the German Empire, the Baltic Sea, Sweden, and
+Norway. This immense empire is the growth of many centuries, and even
+in Europe it has not yet been welded into one whole. When we read
+Russian books, we learn about Great and Little Russia, White and Red
+Russia, which shows that divisions of bygone years are still observed
+by the people. Much has been done towards effacing those boundary
+lines; but the fact that the czar, autocrat though he is, recognizes
+and admits the division in his title, shows that even he is, to some
+extent, subject to public opinion.</p>
+
+<p>Russia <span class="pagenum"><a id="page016" name="page016"></a>(p. 016)</span> in Europe, however, with the exception of Poland and
+Finland, is a country with one religion and one language; that is, the
+czar and his government recognize and admit no other. That is the
+cause of the persecution of the Jews, four fifths of whom dwell in the
+southwest of Russia in an area covering 356,681 square miles, which is
+sometimes mentioned as the Jewish territory. Every succeeding czar has
+tried to make all his subjects think and act in the manner prescribed
+by him. The process is known as "Russianizing," and goes on
+incessantly in its different stages. Immediately after the conquest of
+a country, its people are assured that their religion, institutions,
+and language, shall be respected; the only difference is that the
+native officials are displaced by Russians. This continues until
+Russian rule is firmly established, and no one dreams of resisting the
+czar. Then the Russian language displaces the native tongue, and if
+disturbances occur, the military is called in to inflict a terrible
+punishment. The loss of the native language carries with it that of
+old institutions, and when the people have submitted to their fate, it
+is the turn of their religion. The Russian is in no hurry; he has a
+conviction that time has no changes in store for his empire, hence he
+bides his time, and is likely to succeed in his purpose. This process
+is now carried on in Central Asia where Russian power has found its
+greatest expansion in modern times. It is but fair to admit that
+Russian absorption there has been highly beneficial because robber
+tribes were reduced to law and order.</p>
+
+<a id="img002" name="img002"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<a href="images/img002bg.jpg">
+<img src="images/img002.jpg" width="400" height="495" alt="Russia" title="Russia"></a>
+</div>
+
+<p>Before telling the Story of Russia, that is, of how the huge empire
+was formed and grew to its present size, it <span class="pagenum"><a id="page018" name="page018"></a>(p. 018)</span> is necessary to
+become better acquainted with the aspect and nature of the country.
+Looking at the map of the Eurasian continent, that is, the continent
+embracing Europe and Asia, we cannot fail to notice that Russia is a
+country of the plains. Its southern boundary seems to follow the
+mountain barriers which divide Asia into two parts. Does it not seem
+as if long billows of earth roll down toward the Arctic Ocean, where
+they rest benumbed by the eternal cold? These mountains branch off
+toward the south, east or west, but scorn to throw so much as a spur
+northward. It is true that a solitary chain, the Urals, runs north and
+south, but it stands by itself, and is nothing more than what the word
+Ural signifies, a <i>belt</i> or <i>girdle</i> separating the European from his
+Asiatic brother. These mountains do not form the backbone of a
+country, nor do they serve as a watershed, like our Rocky Mountains or
+the Andes of South America. Some of their peaks rise to a height of
+6,000 feet above the level of the sea, but the chain, 1531 miles long,
+seems destined only to keep the two races apart.</p>
+
+<p>Beyond the Ural mountains, the plain resumes its sway. This extensive
+flat could not fail to exert a noticeable influence upon the country
+and its inhabitants. The dense forests in the north, while acting as a
+screen, do not afford protection against the icy polar winds which
+sweep with scarcely diminished force over the broad expanse, so that
+the northern shores of the Black and Caspian Seas in January have
+about the same temperature as Stockholm, the capital of Sweden. The
+mountains of Western Europe shut off the aërial current of the Gulf
+Stream which tempers the summer heat as well as the winter <span class="pagenum"><a id="page019" name="page019"></a>(p. 019)</span>
+cold. Russia's climate, therefore, is one of extremes. In summer the
+heat is very oppressive, owing to the absence of the sea breeze which
+elsewhere affords so much relief; and when a wind does blow, it only
+adds to the discomfort, because it has lost its moisture. That is the
+reason why Russia suffers so often from drought. This is especially
+the case in the south where no forests are found to attract rain.</p>
+
+<p>Nature has provided a substitute in the splendid waterways. In about
+the center of European Russia, rises the Valdai plateau to a height of
+1,100 feet above the sea level. This is Russia's great watershed. Near
+it, in Lake Volgo, rises the largest river of Europe, "Mother Volga,"
+as the Russian ballad singers love to call it. Its entire length is
+2,336 miles, or nearly the length of the Missouri; it has a basin of
+590,000 square miles. Owing to the slight slope of the land, the great
+river flows placidly in its bed, which is fortunate since its Waters
+are swollen by several large rivers, so that there are points where it
+is seventeen miles wide. The Kama, one of the tributaries of the
+Volga, is 1,266 miles long; the Oka, another confluent, has a length
+of 633 miles. At Kazan, the Volga is 4,953 feet wide, at Jaroslaf
+2,106 feet, and at Samara, 2,446 feet. It empties into the Caspian
+Sea, with a delta of more than seventy branches. The fish caught in
+this river often grow to gigantic proportions; its sturgeons,
+lampreys, and salmon, are highly prized. Since time immemorial, the
+Volga has been a great highway of trade. Kostroma, Nishni Novgorod,
+Kazan, Simbirsk, Saratof, and Astrakhan, are the most populous cities
+on its banks.</p>
+
+<p>Other <span class="pagenum"><a id="page020" name="page020"></a>(p. 020)</span> large rivers rise on the Valdai plateau. The Dnieper
+runs south, passing by Kief, and empties in the Black Sea, near
+Odessa. The Dwina runs northward, seeking the icy Arctic, which it
+enters by way of the White Sea near Archangel. The Düna takes a
+westerly course towards the Gulf of Riga where it empties near the
+city of that name. Of greater importance are the small streams which
+feed Lakes Ladoga and Onega, because they connect Central Russia with
+the Baltic Sea by means of the Neva.</p>
+
+<p>European Russia is usually divided into four zones or belts, from the
+character of the soil and the nature of its productions; their general
+direction is from southwest to northeast. In the north, as a screen
+against the Arctic blast, is the <i>poliessa</i> or forest region, densely
+covered with lindens, birches, larches, and sycamores, with oaks on
+the southern fringe. These forests are invaluable to Russia where, in
+the absence of mountains, stone is scarce. The houses are built of
+wood, and fires are of common occurrence. Both lumber and fuel are
+supplied by these forests which originally extended to Novgorod,
+Moscow, and Jaroslaf. The increase in population together with the
+growing demand for lumber, have caused extensive clearings; but the
+area covered by the forests is so large, that the supply is well-nigh
+inexhaustible.</p>
+
+<p>South of this zone are the black earth lands, extending down to the
+Caucasus and across the Urals, and covering in Europe an area of one
+hundred and fifty million acres,&mdash;equal to that of Texas. This zone
+derives its name from an apparently inexhaustible bed of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page021" name="page021"></a>(p. 021)</span>
+black mold, so rich that no manure is required to produce abundant
+crops. Until late in the last century, and before the United States
+began to export its surplus harvests, this region was considered the
+granary of Europe. It was known in very old times since we read of it
+in the Heroic Age of Ancient Greece, when Jason sailed in the Argo to
+bring home the Golden Fleece.</p>
+
+<p>Almost equal in extent is the zone of arable steppes, or prairies,
+once the home of the Cossack, the nomad who led here the life of a
+shepherd king, moving about as the condition of pasture and flock
+required. Most of this land is now under cultivation, and with careful
+farming produces good crops. These arable steppes cover an area equal
+to that of Iowa, Kansas, and Nebraska.</p>
+
+<p>The fourth and last zone is that of the barren steppes. There is ample
+evidence that at some remote time these plains were covered with salt
+water. The Caspian Sea has a level eighty feet below that of the Black
+Sea, and it is therefore probable that here was a large inland sea of
+which the Caspian and Aral Seas are the remains. These steppes are
+unfit for farming. Here dwell the Kalmucks and Kirghizes, descendants
+of the Tartars whose yoke once pressed heavily upon Russia.</p>
+
+
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page022" name="page022"></a>(p. 022)</span>
+<a id="img003" name="img003"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/img003.jpg" width="500" height="354" alt="Russian Peasants" title="Russian Peasants">
+</div>
+<p class="figcenter">Russian Peasants</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>II&mdash;EARLY RECORDS OF RUSSIA. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page023" name="page023"></a>(p. 023)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>At an early period in the history of Greece, we hear of colonies
+established on the northern shore of the Pontus Euxinus or Hospitable
+Sea, as they named the Black Sea. We may even now recognize some of
+the names of those colonies, such as Odessos, at the mouth of the Bug,
+Tyras, at that of the Dniester, and Pityas where Colchis, the object
+of the search of Jason and his fellow Argonauts, is supposed to have
+been. In the fourth century before our era, some of these colonies
+united under a hereditary <i>archon</i> or governor, probably for the
+purpose of securing better protection against the barbarians who dwelt
+further inland.</p>
+
+<p>The Greeks mention these barbarians as the Scythians, and divided them
+into three classes. The agricultural Scythians dwelt in the black
+earth belt, near the Dnieper; the nomad Scythians lived at some
+distance to the east of them, and the royal Scythians occupied the
+land around the Sea of Azof.</p>
+
+<p>Learned men of Russia have made many excavations on the spots where
+the Greek settlements once stood, during the past century. They have
+been rewarded by finding many works of art, illustrating the mode of
+living <span class="pagenum"><a id="page024" name="page024"></a>(p. 024)</span> of the Scythians. They have been placed, and may be
+seen in the Hermitage museum of St. Petersburg. Among these relics of
+the past are two beautifully engraved vases, one of gold, the other of
+silver. The Scythians on the silver vase wear long hair and beards,
+and are dressed in gowns or tunics, and bear a close resemblance to
+the Russians of our time. These vases and other ancient objects
+confirm what is said about these people by Herodotus, a Greek
+historian who lived in the fourth century before Christ.</p>
+
+<p>We learn from him that the Scythians worshiped a sword stuck into the
+ground, representing the god of war, and that they made human
+sacrifices. They drank the blood of the first enemy killed in battle,
+scalped their prisoners, and used their skulls as drinking cups. In
+the course of time the Greek civilization exerted its influence, and
+penetrated to tribes dwelling much further in the north, as is shown
+by the antiquities found in the government of Ekaterinoslaf.</p>
+
+<p>The <i>orbis terrarum</i> or world so far as it was known to the Greeks,
+was centered about the Mediterranean; hence the name of that sea,
+meaning Middle of the Land or Middle of the Earth. Beyond that there
+was an unknown region, supposed to be inhabited by people of whom many
+wonderful stories were told. Thus they believed in the existence of
+the Arimaspians, a race of one-eyed people; there are legends, too, of
+the Agrippei who were described as bald and snub-nosed. The Greeks
+also mention the Gryphons, who, they said, were guardians of immense
+quantities of gold. The most wonderful people to the Greeks were the
+Hyperboreans, or dwellers beyond <span class="pagenum"><a id="page025" name="page025"></a>(p. 025)</span> the regions of the north
+wind, who were looked upon with awe and pity because it was said that
+they lived in a country where snow fell summer and winter. These were
+some of the races and tribes supposed to inhabit Russia, which goes
+far to prove that the knowledge of that country, in those times, was
+neither extensive nor very accurate.</p>
+
+<p>The truth is that we know very little about the early inhabitants of
+Russia; nor do they concern us greatly, because grave changes occurred
+in the fourth century of our era. At that time several large and
+warlike tribes of Central Asia moved westward compelling other tribes
+on their route to join them or to move ahead. Thus they gathered
+strength until it looked as if Asia was bent upon the conquest of
+Europe. They poured in through the gap between the Ural mountains and
+the Caspian Sea, and the civilized people of southeastern Europe were
+unable to cope with the savage hordes. In the vanguard were the Goths,
+who made an effort to settle, in Scythia, but they were forced to move
+on when Attila, who is known as the Scourge of God, swooped down upon
+them with his Huns. He was followed by a host of Finns, Bulgarians,
+Magyars, and Slavs who, however, left his wake, scattered and settled
+down. Soon after the Slavs became known to Greek authors and were
+described by them. They were divided into a number of tribes, among
+them the Russian Slavs who settled about the sources of the Volga and
+the Oka, and were the founders of Novgorod, Pskof, and Izborsk.</p>
+
+<p>They must have been a numerous people. We hear of another tribe
+settling on the banks of the Vistula, and laying <span class="pagenum"><a id="page026" name="page026"></a>(p. 026)</span> the
+foundation of the future kingdom of Poland. They settled on the upper
+Elbe, and in the north of Germany. It is believed that the Slavs are
+ancestors of the people in Bohemia, Bulgaria, Croatia, Servia, and
+Dalmatia, and in Prussia of those living in Pomerania and Brandenburg.</p>
+
+<p>All these Slavs, although widely dispersed, practiced the same heathen
+rites, spoke the same language, and nursed the same traditions, until
+they fell under different influences. They were, however, not the sole
+occupants of northeastern Europe. Other races had followed in Attila's
+wake, and among them the Finns were the most numerous and most
+warlike. They settled in the basin of the Dwina and the Kama and named
+their new home Biarmaland, while the Russians called it Great Permia.
+They also occupied what is now known as Finland, but which was then
+known as Land of the Suomi. The Finns, more than any other tribe, bore
+evidence of their Asiatic origin.</p>
+
+<p>Thus the present European Russia was divided among a host of tribes,
+belonging either to the Slav or Finn families, and each kept to a
+great extent the superstitions and traditions of his race. Even in our
+time the traces of these superstitions are plainly discernible in many
+parts of Russia. When Christianity was introduced among these people,
+the missionaries found many of the barbaric rites so strongly
+implanted among the people that, instead of making vain efforts to
+uproot them, they preferred to admit them under a Christian name.</p>
+
+<p>The religion of the Slavs bore a great resemblance to that of the
+Norsemen and of the Germanic races; that is, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page027" name="page027"></a>(p. 027)</span> they worshiped
+nature and its phenomena. Dagh Bog was the sungod; Perun, the Thor of
+northern mythology, was the god of thunder; Stri Bog, the god of the
+winds; Voloss, the protector of flocks. They had neither temples nor
+regular priests, but worshiped the oak as the symbol of Perun, and
+before it the leaders offered sacrifices. These ancient deities are
+preserved under the names of St. John, who displaced Perun; Voloss who
+became St. Vlaise, etc. When a chief died, the wife often refused to
+survive her husband. The men-servants were summoned and asked which of
+them would be buried with his master. When one of them came forward,
+he was immediately strangled. Then the same question was put to the
+women servants, and if one of them consented, she was feasted until
+the day when the funeral pyre awaited the corpse. She was then killed
+and her body burned with that of her master. There were, however, some
+tribes that buried their dead.</p>
+
+<p>The father was absolute master of his family, but his authority did
+not descend to the eldest son, but to the oldest of the family, his
+brothers, if any were living, according to their age. The Slavs kept
+several wives, and were given to consume large quantities of a strong
+drink called kvass. They were a people devoted to agriculture; the
+land under cultivation was not owned by one person or a family, but by
+all the members of a community, or <i>mir</i>. The heads of the families
+composing the mir assembled in a council or <i>vetché</i>, which had
+authority over the mir. Only the house and the <i>dvor</i> or inclosure,
+and his share in the harvest, were the property of each householder.
+In the course of time, several of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page028" name="page028"></a>(p. 028)</span> these rural communities
+united in a canton or county, called a <i>volost</i>, which was then
+governed by a council composed of the elders of several communes. It
+happened sometimes that one of these elders, who was considered
+unusually wise or powerful, became chief of the volost, a dignity
+which might become hereditary. This was probably the origin of the
+boyards or nobles. As a rule, the volosts were proud of their
+independence; they disliked entangling alliances, although in time of
+danger or necessity they would enter into a confederacy of all the
+counties belonging to the same tribe, which was then called <i>plemia</i>.
+But it was always understood that such an arrangement was temporary.
+In most of the volosts, there was at least one spot fortified by
+earthen walls and wooden palisades, where the people might take refuge
+in case of an attack.</p>
+
+<p>We know that some of the Slav tribes attained some degree of
+civilization as early as the seventh century of our era. Novgorod was
+a town, large for that time, which carried on a brisk trade with Asia.
+This is amply proved by the discovery of Asiatic coins belonging to
+that period. Although the favorite occupation of the Slavs was
+agriculture, the construction of the fortified places suggests that
+they were not averse to increase their wealth by an occasional raid
+upon their unprepared neighbors. There is other evidence that
+Novgorod, grown into a wealthy city in the middle of the ninth
+century, longed for peace. No wonder that such a community sought for
+means of security for its commerce. But the manner in which it
+accomplished this desire, decided the fate of Russia.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>III&mdash;THE NORSEMEN (OR VARINGIANS) IN RUSSIA. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page029" name="page029"></a>(p. 029)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>It would have been strange indeed, if the bold Norsemen, the bold
+buccaneers who in their frail craft pillaged the west coasts of Europe
+and extended their voyages into the Mediterranean, should have omitted
+to pay a visit to the shores of the Baltic Sea. We know that they
+settled in England and France, and it causes no surprise when we read
+that the Slavs in the neighborhood of the Baltic paid tribute to them.
+They must have been exacting tax collectors, because we read also
+that, in 859, the Slavs rose and expelled their visitors. Three years
+later they returned at the invitation of the people of Novgorod.</p>
+
+<p>Nestor, the historian of the Slav race, who lived in the twelfth
+century, and whose account is remarkably clear and trustworthy, wrote
+that the inhabitants of Novgorod "said to the princes of Varingia,
+'Our land is great and fertile, but it lacks order and justice; come,
+take possession, and govern us.'"</p>
+
+<p>The invitation was accepted. Three brothers, Rurik or the Peaceful,
+Sineous or the Victorious, and Truvor or the Faithful, proceeded to
+Russia with their families and fighting men. Rurik settled on the
+south shore of Lake Ladoga, Sineous on the White Lake, and Truvor at
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page030" name="page030"></a>(p. 030)</span> Izborsk. The two younger brothers died, and Rurik moved to
+Novgorod where he built a castle. At about the same time two other
+Norsemen, Askold and Dir, landed in Russia, and went to Kief, then
+also a flourishing city, where they were equally well received. They
+persuaded its people to prepare an expedition against Czargrad, the
+City of the Czar or Emperor of the Eastern Roman Empire, now known as
+Constantinople, but at that time named Byzantium. The expedition of
+Kief under Askold and Dir sailed down the Dnieper in a fleet of 200
+large boats, entered the Golden Horn&mdash;or Bosphorus,&mdash;and began the
+siege of Constantinople. The capital was saved by the Patriarch or
+head of the Greek Church, who plunged a wonder-working robe into the
+waves, whereupon a violent storm destroyed the Russian fleet.</p>
+
+<p>The two chiefs, Askold and Dir, must have escaped, because they were
+back at Kief when that city received a disagreeable visit. Upon
+Rurik's death, he was succeeded, not by his son Igor, but by his
+brother Oleg as the eldest of the family. The new prince or <i>kniaz</i>
+did not approve of rival Norsemen in his neighborhood. With his own
+men and a large number of Slavs and Finns, he marched upon Kief, and
+on his way compelled Smolensk and Loubetch to submit to his authority.</p>
+
+<p>When he arrived before Kief, he succeeded in capturing Askold and Dir
+who were put to death "because," Oleg explained, "they were neither
+princes themselves, nor of the blood of princes." Kief was taken, and
+Oleg took up his residence in that city.</p>
+
+<a id="img004" name="img004"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/img004.jpg" width="500" height="366" alt="Norsemen" title="Norsemen">
+</div>
+<p class="figcenter">Norsemen</p>
+
+<p>It is at this time that the name Russia first appears. Its <span class="pagenum"><a id="page032" name="page032"></a>(p. 032)</span>
+derivation is doubtful and is, besides, of no great importance. Oleg
+ruled over Russia, that is, the plain extending from Kief to Novgorod.
+There is a story that he was defeated by the Hungarians, who had
+crossed the Dnieper, but it is doubtful, because in the year 907, we
+find him preparing another expedition against Constantinople. On this
+occasion the people of that capital forgot to bring out the robe, and
+tried to poison the invaders, but their scheme was discovered in time;
+they were forced to pay a heavy tribute and Oleg secured, besides, a
+very advantageous commercial treaty.</p>
+
+<p>One of the wizards at Oleg's court had warned him that his favorite
+horse would be the cause of his death, and the animal was kept away
+from him until it died. Oleg did not believe in wizards; he insisted
+upon seeing the body and entered the stable. A snake came out of the
+horse's skull and stung Oleg in the foot, and he died from the effect
+of the poison.</p>
+
+<p>Igor, Rurik's son, was the eldest, and succeeded his uncle. He led
+another expedition against Constantinople, but it ended in disaster,
+because the Russian fleet was destroyed by Greek fire. A large number
+of Russians were captured but Igor escaped. This failure did not
+prevent him from again attacking the Byzantine Empire, and this time
+he was successful. The emperor agreed to pay tribute and signed
+another commercial treaty.</p>
+
+<p>Nestor, the Russian historian, tells us the story of Igor's death. "In
+the year 945," he says, "the <i>drujina</i>" (that is, the body-guard,
+composed of Norsemen or their descendants), "of Igor said to him, 'The
+men of Sveneld are richly provided with weapons and garments, while
+we <span class="pagenum"><a id="page033" name="page033"></a>(p. 033)</span> go in rags; lead us, Prince, to collect the tribute so
+that thou and we may become rich.' Igor consented, and conducted them
+to the Drevlians to raise the tribute. He increased the first imposts,
+and did them violence, he and his men; after having taken all he
+wanted, he returned to his city. While on the road he bethought
+himself and said to his drujina, 'Go on with the tribute; I will go
+back and try to get some more out of them.' Leaving the greater part
+of his men to go on their way, he returned with only a few, to the end
+that he might increase his riches. The Drevlians, when they learnt
+that Igor was coming back, held council with Nal, their prince. 'When
+the wolf enters the sheepfold he slays the whole flock, if the
+shepherd does not slay him. Thus it is with us and Igor; if we do not
+destroy him, we are lost.' Then they sent deputies who said to him,
+'why dost thou come anew unto us? Hast thou not collected all the
+tribute?' But Igor would not hear them, so the Drevlians came out of
+the town of Korosthenes, and slew Igor and his men, for they were but
+a few."</p>
+
+<p>The drujina or body-guard of the duke was at the same time his
+council. The men composing it were considered as members of his
+family; they ate at his table and shared his amusements as well as his
+toil. He did nothing without consulting them, and was really but the
+first among his peers. They formed a court of justice, and it was from
+among them that he appointed the voievods or governors of fortresses,
+and possadniks or commandants of large towns. We have a description of
+the courts of that time by an Arab writer named Ibn Dost. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page034" name="page034"></a>(p. 034)</span> He
+says: "When a Russian brings a complaint against another, he summons
+him before the court of the prince where both state their case. When
+the prince has pronounced his verdict, his orders are executed; but if
+both parties are dissatisfied, the dispute must be decided by weapons.
+He whose sword cuts sharper, gains his cause. At the time of the
+fight, the relatives of the two adversaries appear armed, and surround
+the space set apart. The combatants then come to blows, and the victor
+may impose any terms he pleases."</p>
+
+<p>The people of the country, the peasants, were not quite so free as
+when Rurik landed. They began to be known as <i>moujik</i>, a contemptuous
+diminutive of the word mouj or man, literally manikin. The merchants
+or <i>gosti</i> did not form a distinct class, but in larger cities, such
+as Novgorod and Kief, they had a voice in the administration. These
+cities had a vetché or municipal council which directed the city's
+business without any direct interference from the prince. The
+successors of Rurik attended to the defense of the country, the
+administration of justice, and the collection of tribute and taxes,
+which sources of revenue were appropriated by them and served for
+their support and for that of the drujina.</p>
+
+<p>The Slavs of that time exhibited many characteristics which we
+recognize in the Russians of our time. Leo the Deacon, a noted writer
+of that time, mentions that they fought in a compact body, and seemed
+like a wall of iron, bristling with lances, glittering with shields,
+whence rang a ceaseless clamor like the waves of the sea. A huge
+shield covered them to their feet, and, when they fought in retreat,
+they turned this enormous buckler on <span class="pagenum"><a id="page035" name="page035"></a>(p. 035)</span> their backs and became
+invulnerable. The fury of the battle frenzied them. They were never
+seen to surrender. When victory was lost they stabbed themselves, for
+they believed that those who died by the hand of an enemy were
+condemned to serve him in the life after death. The emperors of
+Byzantium were glad to secure their services, and the <i>ross</i>, as they
+called them, often formed the body-guard. In the Byzantine expedition
+against Crete, 700 Russians served in the army.</p>
+
+<p>The Norsemen readily adapted themselves to the habits, customs, and
+language of the people among whom they settled. We find the Norse
+names of Rurik, Oleg, and Igor, but after the last named their
+descendants were Russians and bore Russian names.</p>
+
+<p>At Igor's death his son Sviatoslaf was still a minor, whose mother,
+Olga, became Regent. She was a woman of determination, whose first
+thought was to avenge the death of her husband. The Drevlians, hearing
+of her preparations, sent two deputations to appease her: not a man
+returned. They were all put to death at her command. Nestor tells us
+that Olga herself commanded her warriors at the siege of Korosthenes,
+and that she offered to make peace on payment of a tribute of three
+pigeons and three sparrows for every house. This was accepted and the
+birds were delivered, when she ordered lighted tow to be fastened to
+their tails, and when they flew back to the wooden town, they set fire
+to the houses and barns. Korosthenes was then captured and a great
+number of its inhabitants were slaughtered and the rest were made
+slaves.</p>
+
+<p>It seems strange that such a woman should have been the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page036" name="page036"></a>(p. 036)</span>
+first of Rurik's house to embrace Christianity. There is no doubt that
+she visited Constantinople where she astonished the emperor by the
+force of her character. She was baptized and received the name of
+Helen. It is quite possible that she came to Constantinople for that
+purpose, because we read that she refused to be baptized at Kief "for
+fear of the pagans." This confirms the Greek records in which it is
+stated that a bishop was established in Russia, probably at Kief, in
+the time of Oleg.</p>
+
+<p>It is not strange that Christianity should have taken root in Russia
+after the frequent wars with the Byzantine Empire, and considering the
+commerce carried on between Kief and Constantinople. Missionaries
+entered Russia at an early period. Two of them, Cyril and Methodius,
+prepared a Slavonic alphabet, in which many Greek letters were used,
+and the Bible was translated into that language. There is a tradition
+that Askold was baptized after his defeat at Constantinople, and that
+this is the reason why the people still worship at his tomb at Kief,
+as of that of the first Christian prince. The Norsemen had no taste
+for persecution on account of religious belief, but for themselves
+they clung to the heathen deities. When Igor swore to observe the
+treaty concluded with Emperor Leo VI, he went up to the hill of Perun
+and used the ancient Slavonic rites; but the emperor's deputies went
+to the church of St. Elias, and there laid their hands upon the Bible
+as a token of good faith.</p>
+
+<p>The drujina and warriors did not take kindly to Christianity. They, as
+well as the peasants, preferred to worship Perun and Voloss. The same
+thing happened elsewhere. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page037" name="page037"></a>(p. 037)</span> Christianity made the greatest
+progress in cities, whereas the dwellers on the "heath" remained
+"heathen." "When one of the warriors of the prince wished to become a
+convert," says Nestor, "he was not prevented; they simply laughed at
+him." When Olga returned from Constantinople, she was anxious that her
+son, who was of age and had succeeded to his father, should follow her
+example. Sviatoslaf refused; "my men will laugh at me," was his usual
+answer. Nestor mentions that he sometimes lost his temper.
+Christianity did not make much progress during his reign.</p>
+
+<p>He was a warrior, like his Norse ancestors. In the brief time of eight
+years, 964-972, he found time to wage two wars. The first was with the
+Khazar empire on the Don. Sviatoslaf captured its capital, the White
+City, and received tribute from two tribes of the Caucasus. The second
+war did not turn out so well.</p>
+
+<p>From Nestor's account and that of Leo the Deacon, it appears that the
+Byzantine emperor, wishing to make use of Sviatoslaf, decided to find
+out what sort of man he was. He therefore sent him presents of gold
+and fine clothes, but the grandson of Rurik would scarcely look at
+them and told his warriors to take them away. When the emperor heard
+this, he sent him a fine sword and other weapons; these were accepted
+with every token of satisfaction by Sviatoslaf. When the emperor was
+informed of the result, he exclaimed: "This must be a fierce man,
+because he despises wealth and accepts a sword as tribute."</p>
+
+<p>This did not prevent the emperor, who had a private quarrel with
+Peter, Czar of Bulgaria, from urging Sviatoslaf <span class="pagenum"><a id="page038" name="page038"></a>(p. 038)</span> to make war
+upon his enemy. The Russian gave a hearty consent, and in a very short
+time he captured several fortresses and Peréiaslaf, the capital, fell
+into his hands. He determined to transfer his capital there, and when
+he returned to Kief, he told his mother of the city on the Danube.
+"The place," he said, "is the central point of my territory, and
+abounds in wealth. Precious goods, gold, wine, and all kinds of fruit,
+come from Greece. Silver and horses are brought from the country of
+the Czechs and Hungarians, and the Russians bring money, furs, wax,
+and slaves."</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile the emperor of Constantinople was dead; his successor, John
+Zimisces was a very different man, who preferred having a weak
+Bulgarian ruler as his neighbor, instead of an empire which, even at
+that time, extended from Lakes Ladoga and Onega to the Balkans. He,
+therefore, made up his mind to oust the Russians. Sviatoslaf had left
+Bulgaria, but he returned and reconquered it, when he received a
+demand from the new emperor to execute the treaty entered into with
+his predecessor, that is, to leave Bulgaria. Sviatoslaf replied
+proudly that he expected to visit the emperor at Constantinople before
+long, but Zimisces, a brave and able man, took measures to prevent it.
+Before Sviatoslaf expected him, Zimisces attacked and defeated the
+Russians in the defiles of the Balkan, and soon after stormed and
+captured Peréiaslaf. Eight thousand Russians withdrew into the castle,
+which they defended heroically. They refused to surrender and, when
+the castle was set on fire, they perished in the flames.</p>
+
+<p>When Sviatoslaf heard of this disaster, he advanced against <span class="pagenum"><a id="page039" name="page039"></a>(p. 039)</span>
+the emperor. The Greek historian says that the Russian army was 60,000
+men strong, but Nestor gives the number at 10,000. The two armies met
+and both fought with desperate valor, but at last the Russians gave
+way before the furious charges of the Greek cavalry&mdash;the
+Ironsides&mdash;and withdrew to Dorostol. Zimisces started in pursuit, and
+laid siege to the city where the same courage was displayed. After
+Sviatoslaf drew his men up out of the city and prepared to give
+battle, Zimisces proposed to him to decide the issue by a personal
+fight, but the offer was declined. "I know better than my enemy what I
+have to do," said Sviatoslaf. "If he is weary of life, there are a
+thousand ways by which he can end his days." The battle ended in
+defeat for the Russians who, Leo the Deacon tells us, left 15,500
+dead, and 20,000 shields on the battlefield. Sviatoslaf was compelled
+to come to terms. Zimisces permitted him and what remained of his army
+to return to Russia, after he had sworn by Perun and Voloss that he
+would never again invade the empire, but would help in defending it
+against its enemies. If he broke his oath, he wished that he might
+"become as yellow as gold, and perish by his own arms." Zimisces
+showed the nobility of a brave man. He sent messengers to a warlike
+tribe requesting a free passage for the Russians; but this tribe was
+anxious to seize the opportunity. Sviatoslaf and his men were attacked
+near the Cataracts of the Dnieper; he was killed, but most of his men
+escaped. (A.D. 972.)</p>
+
+
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page040" name="page040"></a>(p. 040)</span>
+<a id="img005" name="img005"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/img005.jpg" width="400" height="427" alt="Vladimir" title="Vladimir">
+</div>
+<p class="figcenter">Vladimir</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>IV&mdash;SAINT VLADIMIR AND IAROSLAF THE GREAT. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page041" name="page041"></a>(p. 041)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>Sviatoslaf had divided the empire among his three sons; he left
+Novgorod to Vladimir, the eldest; Oleg, the second, was made prince of
+the Drevlians, and the youngest, Iaropolk, received Kief. As happens
+often, none of the three was satisfied with his share, and civil wars
+followed. Oleg was killed by Iaropolk, whereupon the youngest son of
+Sviatoslaf was slain by his brother Vladimir, who thus became the sole
+heir and successor to his father. His first act was to make war upon
+Poland. He compelled it to restore Red Russia or Old Gallicia, a
+territory in our time divided into seven governments, or provinces. He
+also reduced two revolted tribes, and forced the Lithuanians and
+Livonians to pay tribute.</p>
+
+<p>At the beginning of his reign, Vladimir showed an unusual devotion to
+the old Slav gods. He erected idols on the sandy cliffs of Kief; that
+of Perun had a head of silver and a beard of gold. It seems that after
+some time he became displeased with this religion and, Nestor tells
+us, he grew anxious to know what religion was the best. He, therefore,
+sent deputies to Bulgaria to study the Moslem or Mohammedan creed, and
+to the Khazars, who <span class="pagenum"><a id="page042" name="page042"></a>(p. 042)</span> occupied the plain between the Bug and
+the Volga, to make inquiries about the Jewish faith. From the Poles
+and Germans he wanted to know all about the Roman Catholic Church, and
+at Constantinople he expected to learn of the Greek faith. When these
+deputies returned and reported to him, Vladimir selected the Greek
+Church, which choice was approved by his drujina; "if the Greek
+religion had not been the best, your grandmother Olga, the wisest of
+mortals, would not have adopted it," said they. Thus Vladimir became a
+convert; but his method of showing it was rather peculiar.</p>
+
+<p>He might have been baptized by the bishop of Kief; or, if he had
+applied at Constantinople, the emperor would gladly have sent him a
+high prelate to perform the service. Instead of this, Vladimir
+collected an army and marched against Kherson,&mdash;the last city in
+Russia held by the Byzantine. It was taken by means of treachery, and
+from this city Vladimir sent to Constantinople to demand in marriage
+the sister of the two emperors Basil and Constantine. Although the
+emperors did not like the proposed connection, they consented because
+they feared an invasion, but made it a condition that Vladimir should
+be baptized. The ceremony was performed at Kherson; soon after the
+bride arrived and the marriage took place in the same city. When he
+returned to Kief, he carried with him the priests and sacred ornaments
+taken from the churches of Kherson.</p>
+
+<p>Upon his return to Kief, he began missionary work by his own peculiar
+methods. His first orders were to pull down the idols; during the
+execution the people wept, moaned, and wrung their hands. Perun's
+image was handsomely <span class="pagenum"><a id="page043" name="page043"></a>(p. 043)</span> flogged and thrown into the Dnieper.
+Since it was made of wood, it soon came to the surface, which was
+looked upon as a miracle by the people who rushed down to worship it.
+But Vladimir's soldiers gave it another bath, and this time it was
+caught by the current and drifted away. The cliff where it stood is
+still known at Kief as "the devil's leap," and the spot where Perun
+floated ashore, is shown to visitors.</p>
+
+<p>After thus getting rid of the idols, Vladimir commanded the people of
+Kief, men, women, and children, to plunge into the Dnieper, which had
+been consecrated for the occasion, that they might be baptized. When
+they had obeyed his order, the priests read the service, so that after
+entering into the river as heathen, they left it as Christians. The
+people of Novgorod were converted in the same swift and practical
+manner, since no attention was paid to their objections.</p>
+
+<p>Heathen temples were next converted into churches, which were
+decorated by Greek artists. Vladimir erected at Kief the church of St.
+Basil, on the place where Perun's image had stood. Numerous other
+churches were built; he also founded schools where the Bible was
+taught in the Slav language. At first the people objected to send
+their children, because they looked upon reading and writing as magic.
+But Vladimir had persuasive ways, and was not likely to be deterred by
+such opposition. Nestor admired him very much. He says that Vladimir
+was a different man after he had been converted; that he was so afraid
+of committing a sin, that he hesitated to inflict capital punishment,
+until the bishop reminded him that crime must be punished. He also
+divided his income <span class="pagenum"><a id="page044" name="page044"></a>(p. 044)</span> among the churches, and thus became the
+Saint Vladimir of Russia. Popular ballads keep alive the memory of the
+first Christian prince. He is often mentioned in them as "The
+Beautiful Sun" of Kief.</p>
+
+<p>It cannot be supposed that the Russian people were converted at once
+into good Christians by Vladimir's forceful method. Several centuries
+were to pass away before the peasants could be induced to part with
+their heathen customs. The priests preferred to let them remain under
+a Christian name. There is something mystic in the Slav character. He
+nurses the belief in magicians and sorcerers, which has never been
+uprooted. It is seen at present in the worship of the <i>eikon</i> or
+saint's image.</p>
+
+<p>Vladimir died in 1015. He, too, divided Russia among his numerous
+sons. One of them, Iaroslaf, received Novgorod, where he began to
+interfere with the rights of the people. A deputation of leading
+citizens came to him with a protest. He ordered their arrest and
+condemned them to death. Meanwhile Vladimir's other heirs had indulged
+in the usual quarrels and wars, until it seemed as if Sviatopolk, a
+nephew, would become the sole ruler. Iaroslaf then called the
+principal people of Novgorod together, and threw himself upon their
+generosity. They forgave him and promised their support. They kept
+their word, and after a long and bloody war he entered Kief as his
+father's successor.</p>
+
+<p>Iaroslaf was unfortunate in a war with the Byzantine Empire. The
+Russian fleet was badly defeated in the Bosphorus; 8,000 men were
+killed, and 800 prisoners were taken to Constantinople.</p>
+
+<p>Of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page045" name="page045"></a>(p. 045)</span> greater importance was Iaroslaf's work at home. He built
+churches and monasteries; St. Sophia church was the pride of Kief; the
+monastery of The Catacombs still draws pilgrims from all parts of
+Russia. Kief became known as "the city of four hundred churches." He
+also founded a school for three hundred boys at Novgorod, thereby
+showing that Russia at that time was second to no European nation.</p>
+
+<p>Kief, under his reign, was one of the most prosperous cities. This was
+due to her situation on the Dnieper and her trade with the Byzantine
+Empire, to the great fertility of the Black Earth land, and to
+Iaroslaf's connection by marriage with the reigning families of
+Europe. Of his daughters Elizabeth was the wife of the King of Norway,
+Anne of the King of France, and Anastasia of the King of Hungary; his
+sister Mary was married to the King of Poland, and his sons had
+married into royal families. Merchants from Holland, Germany, Hungary,
+and Scandinavia were established at Kief. The Dnieper was alive with
+merchant vessels, and she counted eight markets. It is evident that
+Iaroslaf took pains to protect and advance commerce. He had coins
+minted with his Slav name on one side, and his Christian name Ioury
+(George), on the other.</p>
+
+<p>Perhaps his greatest work is the code of laws established by him,
+known as the <i>Russkaïa Pravda</i> or Russian Right. Though necessarily
+primitive, it was a long step in advance of that time. It followed
+chiefly the ideas of right and wrong according to the conceptions of
+the Scandinavians.</p>
+
+<p>At this time, although the dignity of <i>kniaz</i>, duke or prince,
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page046" name="page046"></a>(p. 046)</span> was hereditary in the family of Rurik, it was understood by
+all parties that the reign of the prince depended upon the consent of
+his subjects, and perhaps more still upon that of his drujina. A story
+is told that in Vladimir's time the drujina complained that they were
+made to eat from wooden bowls, whereupon he gave them silver ones,
+saying: I could not buy myself a drujina with gold and silver; but
+with a drujina, I can acquire gold and silver, as did my father and my
+grandfather.</p>
+
+<p>Ever since Kief had been the residence of Rurik's descendants, they
+had been recognized as Grand Dukes, because they represented the
+eldest of the descendants. They did not, as a rule, interfere with the
+administration, but were the dukes, the commanders of the armies. Many
+districts had such a duke, who was, however, invariably of the blood
+of Rurik, and recognized the superior authority as the eldest of the
+blood. When the Grand Duke of Kief died, he was not succeeded by his
+son, unless he had neither uncle nor brother living; but it was within
+the power of the grand duke to leave one or more districts to his
+sons.</p>
+
+<p>The descendants of the Norsemen were, therefore, the defenders of the
+districts which they ruled as dukes. Novgorod and Pskof were republics
+on the northwest frontier, and usually had the same duke. Smolensk was
+an important dukedom, because it contained the sources of the Volga,
+the Dnieper, and the Dwina, and embraced the ancient forest of Okof.
+Not far from it was the dukedom of Toropetz. On the Upper Oka was
+Tchernigof&mdash;a rival of Kief; further to the south was Novgorod-Swerki,
+and east of the Upper Don, extending as far <span class="pagenum"><a id="page047" name="page047"></a>(p. 047)</span> as the Oka, were
+Riazan and Mourom. The dukedom of Souzdal, inhabited by a mixture of
+Finns and Slavs, was in the north, the soil still covered by forests.
+Southeast Russia embraced Red Russia, that is Volhynia and Gallicia
+Proper.</p>
+
+<p>The introduction of the Greek Church caused important changes. The
+Greek Priests could not comprehend the relation between the people and
+its defenders. To them the duke was not a <i>dux</i> (leader), but a Cæsar,
+Kaiser, or Czar, ruling, not with the consent of the governed, but by
+the grace of God, as did the emperors at Constantinople. This idea
+gradually penetrated into the minds of the several dukes, until it was
+accepted and enforced by them.</p>
+
+<p>Another very important change was effected by the Greek religion. We
+have seen that according to the old Slav customs, it was not the son
+who succeeded as the head of the family, but its eldest member. It
+appears that the same custom prevailed among the Norsemen, as we have
+seen that it was Rurik's brother, and not his son who succeeded him.
+In the Byzantine Empire, the oldest son was the heir, and the priests
+tried to introduce this as a law.</p>
+
+<p>As the descendants of Rurik increased in number, it was not always
+easy to determine who was entitled to the succession. Hence there were
+often several claimants, and as a result, civil wars followed. These
+wars, strange as it may appear, served to bind the dukedoms together,
+because most of them were waged for the purpose of establishing the
+claim of a duke upon the possession of Kief.</p>
+
+<p>Iaroslaf <span class="pagenum"><a id="page048" name="page048"></a>(p. 048)</span> died in 1054, and was buried in the church of St.
+Sophia at Kief. In his will we see the effect of the Greek Church, for
+he specially appointed his eldest son Isiaslaf as his successor. A
+younger brother, Sviatoslaf, took up arms, and expelled him in 1073.
+Upon his death in 1076, Isiaslaf returned to Kief, where he lived two
+years. He died in 1078, and was succeeded by his brother Vsevolod, who
+was grand duke until 1093, when he was succeeded by Sviatopolk, the
+son of Isiaslaf, as the eldest of the family. He was not opposed by
+Vsevolod's famous son Vladimir Monomachus, who admitted that
+Sviatopolk's "father was older than mine, and reigned first in Kief."</p>
+
+
+
+
+
+<h2>V&mdash;A RUSSIAN REPUBLIC. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page049" name="page049"></a>(p. 049)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>Sviatopolk reigned from 1093 to 1113. It was at this time that Russia
+was disturbed by two civil wars. At the instance of Vladimir
+Monomachus a congress of dukes met in 1097, at Loubetch on the Dnieper
+to discuss the folly of civil wars which placed the country at the
+mercy of its enemies. An agreement was concluded, wherein the dukes
+swore upon the Cross that "henceforth the Russian land shall be
+considered the country of us all, and whoso shall dare arm himself
+against his brother, shall be our common enemy."</p>
+
+<p>Soon after this a quarrel broke out about the succession of Volhynia,
+and again the country was plunged into civil strife, which lasted two
+years. In 1100 another congress was held at Vititchevo, on the left
+bank of the Dnieper, where the dispute was settled, and it was
+resolved to unite in a war with a powerful nomad people. The Russians
+under Vladimir Monomachus gained a brilliant victory; the nomads had
+seventeen khans killed on the battlefield.</p>
+
+<p>When Sviatopolk died, the people of Kief declared that they would have
+no grand duke except Vladimir. He declined saying that there were
+elder heirs entitled to the succession; but when troubles broke out in
+the city, he gave <span class="pagenum"><a id="page050" name="page050"></a>(p. 050)</span> his consent. During his reign of twelve
+years, from 1113 to 1125, Kief reached the height of prosperity and
+power. He reduced Souzdal, in the north, to submission, and made many
+improvements. His memory is cherished in Russia. He compiled a set of
+instructions for his sons, from which we may judge of his character.
+Among other remarks, he says: "It is neither by fasting, nor solitude,
+nor the life in a cloister that will procure for you the life
+eternal,&mdash;it is doing good. Do not forget the poor but feed them. Do
+not bury your wealth in the bosom of the earth, for that is contrary
+to the precepts of Christianity. Be a father to orphans, judge the
+cause of widows yourself." "Put to death no one be he innocent or
+guilty, for nothing is more precious than the soul of a Christian."
+"When you have learned anything useful, try to preserve it in your
+memory, and strive ceaselessly to acquire knowledge. Without ever
+leaving his palace, my father spoke five languages, <i>a thing that
+foreigners admire in us</i>."</p>
+
+<p>There are in the museum at Moscow, a throne and crown, supposed to
+have belonged to this noble and patriotic duke; unfortunately it has
+been shown that they were never in his possession.</p>
+
+<p>In his will, Vladimir gave the dukedom of Souzdal to his son George
+Dolgorouki, and another son, Mstislaf, succeeded as grand duke at
+Kief. When the latter died in 1146, leaving the grand dukedom to his
+son Isiaslaf, George Dolgorouki claimed the succession as the eldest
+of the family. Both sides were supported by their friends, and some
+fierce battles were fought, but Isiaslaf maintained himself until his
+death in 1157. After his reign, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page051" name="page051"></a>(p. 051)</span> Kief's importance began to
+decrease. Twelve years later, in 1169, it was captured by the Russians
+of the north. A native historian<a id="footnotetag1" name="footnotetag1"></a><a href="#footnote1">[1]</a> says of this event: "This mother
+of Russian cities had been many times besieged and oppressed. She had
+often opened her Golden Gate to her enemies, but none had ever yet
+entered by force. To their eternal shame, the victors forgot that
+they, too, were Russians! During three days not only the houses, but
+the cloisters, churches, and even the temples of St. Sophia and the
+Dîme, were given over to pillage. The precious images, the sacerdotal
+ornaments, the books, and the bells,&mdash;all were carried off."</p>
+
+<p>With the fall of Kief, the scene of Russian activity shifts to the
+north. There, in the dukedom of Souzdal, George Dolgorouki laid, in
+1147, the foundation of a town, Moscow, on a height overlooking the
+Moscowa. For many years it remained an obscure village, and gave no
+sign of its future greatness.</p>
+
+<p>The chief interest at this time centers about the Russian republics,
+Novgorod, Pskof, and Viatka. Although Novgorod did not possess the
+advantages of Kief, since its soil was sandy, marshy, and
+unproductive, the enterprise of its people made it the wealthiest and
+most populous city of Russia. It is recorded that it counted 100,000
+inhabitants, when Rurik arrived in Russia. He and his immediate
+successors were satisfied with the position of Defender, which suited
+their warlike and blunt character, and with the revenues assigned to
+them, which with the spoils taken from the enemy, were ample for their
+wants. These republics were administered by a vetché or <span class="pagenum"><a id="page052" name="page052"></a>(p. 052)</span>
+municipal council, with a possadnik or burgomaster, whose duty it was
+to see that the city's privileges were preserved, and who distributed
+the taxes. He shared with the duke in the administration of justice.
+There was a militia for the defense of the people's rights, commanded
+by a <i>tysatski</i>. Every ward of the city had a <i>starost</i>, charged with
+preserving the peace. It is said that a written constitution,
+partaking of the nature of the Magna Charta, was granted to Novgorod
+by Iaroslaf the Great. The duke's rights and privileges, his duties
+and his revenues, were carefully set down. He was entitled to the
+tribute of some of the volosts,&mdash;cantons or counties,&mdash;and to certain
+fines; he could gather in his harvests at stated times, and was not
+permitted to hunt in the forest except in the autumn. He could neither
+execute nor annul a judgment without the approval of the possadnik,
+and he was expressly forbidden to carry a lawsuit beyond Novgorod.
+Every duke, before he entered upon his office, was compelled to take
+an oath to this constitution.</p>
+
+<p>The members of the vetché were elected by a unanimous vote, instead of
+by a majority. This gave rise to frequent, and sometimes very serious
+disorder, because if a minority did not approve of the candidate, they
+were apt to be ill-treated. There were occasions when two rival
+vetchés were elected, and when this happened in the two parts of the
+city divided by the river Volkhof, the bridge between them was often
+the scene of a free fight. Owing to the extensive trade connections,
+the merchants trading with western Europe by way of the Baltic sought
+to promote friendly relations with the dukes of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page053" name="page053"></a>(p. 053)</span> the west,
+who had it in their power to promote or obstruct their trade; but the
+merchants dealing with Asia, and those who connected with
+Constantinople had other interests to consider and to guard. Thus
+there were often three parties, each concerned with its own interests,
+and forgetting that their prosperity was first and chiefly dependent
+upon the power of the republic, they rendered it an easy prey for an
+ambitious duke. The people, however, boasted of their patriotism, and
+during the early period they were strong enough to defy the duke. On
+some occasions, he and his drujina were expelled, or, as they
+expressed it, "the people made him a reverence, and showed him a way
+to leave." Sometimes, too, it happened that the duke was made a
+prisoner, and confined in the Archbishop's palace. When Sviatopolk was
+Grand Duke of Kief (1093-1113), he wished to force one of his sons
+upon the people of Novgorod. "Send him along," said they, "if he has a
+head to spare!" Usually the duke was glad to leave Novgorod, if he
+could secure another dukedom. In 1132, Vsevolod Gabriel left Novgorod
+to become Duke of Peréiaslaf, hoping to succeed as Grand Duke of Kief.
+Seeing no way to attain the coveted dignity, he signified his wish to
+return to the people of Novgorod. "You have forgotten your oath to die
+with us," they replied; "you have sought another dukedom; now you may
+go where you please." In this case, however, the people changed their
+mind, and did take him back; but four years afterwards they expelled
+him, declaring that "he took no care of the poor people; he desired to
+establish himself at Peréiaslaf; at the battle of Mount Idanof against
+the men of Souzdal, he <span class="pagenum"><a id="page054" name="page054"></a>(p. 054)</span> and his drujina were the first to
+leave the battlefield; he was fickle in the quarrels of the dukes,
+sometimes joining one party and sometimes the other."</p>
+
+<p>So long as the descendants of Rurik remained satisfied with their
+position, Novgorod had enough men and resources to maintain its
+independence; but more than that was required after the dukes had
+tasted of the sweets of unlimited power.</p>
+
+<p>George Dolgorouki had established colonies in Souzdal. The land was
+his, the colonists were his subjects. He was no longer merely the
+defender, he was the owner, not the duke, but the prince. There was no
+vetché or popular assembly in his possessions. His son, Andrew
+Bogolioubski, was brought up and educated amid these conditions, more
+in conformity with those prevailing in Greece and other parts of
+Europe, where the people were supposed to exist for the sole benefit
+of their prince. It was he who ruined Kief, and the fall of that city
+foretold the doom of Novgorod. "The fall of Kief," says a Russian
+author,<a id="footnotetag2" name="footnotetag2"></a><a href="#footnote2">[2]</a> "seemed to foreshadow the loss of Novgorod liberty; it was
+the same army, and it was the same prince who commanded it. But the
+people of Kief, accustomed to change their masters,&mdash;to sacrifice the
+vanquished to the victors,&mdash;only fought for the honor of their dukes,
+while those of Novgorod were to shed their blood for the defense of
+the laws and institutions established by their ancestors."</p>
+
+<p>During his father's life, Andrew left his castle on the Dnieper, and
+moved northward to Vladimir which town he enlarged, and where he
+founded a quarter named Bogolioubovo, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page055" name="page055"></a>(p. 055)</span> whence his name of
+Bogolioubski. After the death of George Dolgorouki, Andrew first made
+a successful campaign against the Bulgarians, and then, after sacking
+Kief, he turned his attention toward Novgorod, where he had
+established one of his nephews. The cause of the quarrel is not known,
+but Andrew began by compelling the neighboring dukes to join him, and
+overran the territory of the republic with fire and sword. The people
+of Novgorod, remembering the fate of Kief, were prepared to die in the
+defense of the city. The siege commenced. One day the Archbishop took
+the eikon&mdash;image&mdash;of the Virgin, which was carried around in solemn
+procession. It was struck by an arrow shot by a Souzdalian soldier,
+when miraculous tears appeared upon its face. The besiegers were
+struck by a panic, and the people of Novgorod sallied out, killed a
+number of the enemy, and took so many prisoners that "you could get
+six Souzdalians for a grivna." Whatever may have been the value of
+that coin, the market was evidently overstocked with Souzdalians.</p>
+
+<p>Foiled in this attempt, Andrew tried other means. He prohibited the
+sale of grain to the people of Novgorod, who were thereby compelled to
+make peace. They did not surrender any of their privileges but
+accepted as their duke the prince selected by Andrew.</p>
+
+<p>His next war was with Mstislaf the Brave, Duke of Smolensk, who, aided
+by his brothers, had taken Kief. Andrew sent a herald to him demanding
+the evacuation of Kief, and imposing a fine upon each brother.
+Mstislaf who, the Russians say, "feared none but God," gave orders to
+have the herald's head and beard shaved,&mdash;a gross <span class="pagenum"><a id="page056" name="page056"></a>(p. 056)</span> insult at
+that time,&mdash;and then dismissed him, saying: "Go and repeat these words
+unto your master,&mdash;'Up to this time we have respected you like a
+father, but since you do not blush to treat us as your vassals and
+common people, since you have forgotten that you speak to princes, we
+laugh at your threats. Execute them!&mdash;we appeal to the judgment of
+God.'" The challenge was accepted, and Andrew was defeated.</p>
+
+<p>The Duke of Souzdal did not relax in his attempts to established
+absolute government. It was with this purpose in view that he expelled
+his three brothers, and made friends of the priests. Kief was still
+the residence of the <i>Metropolitan</i> or head of the Greek Church in
+Russia, and Andrew was anxious that he should transfer his residence
+to Vladimir so as to make that city the religious center of Russia.
+His wish was not gratified. He failed in everything, except in making
+enemies by his disregard of law. He was murdered in 1174 in his
+favorite palace at Bogolioubovo, by his own <i>boyards</i> or nobles.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>VI&mdash;TROUBLOUS TIMES. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page057" name="page057"></a>(p. 057)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>The death of Andrew was a welcome relief for the people of Novgorod.
+They celebrated it by attacking the houses of the rich, and committed
+so many excesses that the priests made a procession with the eikons.
+In Souzdal there was trouble about the succession. Two of Andrew's
+brothers returned from exile, and claimed the dukedom, and the city of
+Vladimir gave them its support. That was enough for Souzdal and Rostof
+to recognize another claimant, one of Andrew's nephews. Vladimir was
+victorious in the contest, and Andrew's brother, Michael, became Grand
+Duke of Souzdal. He died two years afterwards, and the people of
+Souzdal once more refused to recognize Vladimir's candidate, Andrew's
+other brother Vsevolod, surnamed the Big Nest on account of his
+numerous family. Vladimir defeated Souzdal and Vsevolod was its grand
+duke from 1176 to 1212. The people of Novgorod thought best to pacify
+him. They sent a deputation to Vladimir, to tell Vsevolod, "Lord and
+Grand Duke, our country is your patrimony; we entreat you to send us
+the grandson of George Dolgorouki, the great-grandson of Monomachus,
+to govern us." The request was granted, and Vsevolod's eldest son
+Constantine came to Novgorod. The <span class="pagenum"><a id="page058" name="page058"></a>(p. 058)</span> grand duke, however, was
+soon displeased with him and displaced him by a younger son, Iaroslaf.
+Soon there were quarrels between him and the people, whereupon
+Iaroslaf moved to Torjok, a town within Novgorod territory, and from
+there stopped all supplies. Famine appeared in the city, and at last
+envoys were sent to the duke, who had them arrested. Nothing except
+absolute submission would satisfy him. In this dire need help came
+from an unexpected quarter. Mstislaf the Bold, son of Mstislaf the
+Brave, Duke of Smolensk, heard of Novgorod's plight and sent word to
+the city, "Torjok shall not hold itself higher than Novgorod. I will
+deliver your lands and citizens, or leave my bones among you." He was
+as good as his word. There was a great war between Souzdal and
+Smolensk; no quarter was asked or given. In 1216, Vsevolod's sons were
+attacked at Lipetsk by the troops of Novgorod and Smolensk, with such
+fury that they were routed, and 9,000 were killed whereas only 60 were
+taken prisoners. Iaroslaf renounced Novgorod and released the citizens
+arrested by him.</p>
+
+<p>Constantine succeeded his father Vsevolod, but died in 1217, and
+another brother, George, became Grand Duke of Souzdal. This prince
+made an expedition down the Volga, levying tribute as he proceeded. In
+1220, he laid the foundation of Nishni Novgorod, and of several
+villages in what was then Moravian territory.</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile Mstislaf the Bold resigned as Grand Duke of Novgorod in an
+assembly of the people, saying, "I salute St. Sophia, the tomb of my
+father,<a id="footnotetag3" name="footnotetag3"></a><a href="#footnote3">[3]</a> and you. People of Novgorod, I am going to reconquer
+Galitch from <span class="pagenum"><a id="page059" name="page059"></a>(p. 059)</span> the strangers, but I shall never forget you. I
+hope I may lie by the tomb of my father in St. Sophia." The people
+implored him to remain; but he had made up his mind, and in 1218 he
+left for the southwest, where he did succeed in conquering Galitch,
+that is the name given to southwestern Russia at that time.</p>
+
+<p>After his departure the people of Novgorod called his nephew
+Sviatoslaf as their grand duke, but soon there was a quarrel. The
+possadnik Tferdislaf caused the arrest of one of the wealthy citizens,
+whose friends rose to set him free. Then the burgomaster's friends
+came and there was a fight in which ten men were killed. The grand
+duke then demanded the dismissal of the burgomaster, and the vetché
+assembled to hear both sides. The grand duke was asked what crime the
+possadnik had committed.</p>
+
+<p>"None," he replied, "but it is my will that he be dismissed."</p>
+
+<p>The burgomaster then said: "I am satisfied, because I am not accused
+of any fault; as for you, my brothers, you can dismiss alike
+possadniks and dukes."</p>
+
+<p>The vetché consulted, and announced its decision:</p>
+
+<p>"Prince, since you do not accuse the possadnik of any fault, remember
+that you have sworn to depose no magistrate without trial. Tferdislaf
+will remain our possadnik,&mdash;we will not deliver him to you."</p>
+
+<p>Sviatoslaf was very much displeased and resigned, and one of his
+brothers, Vsevolod, was appointed in his place. This was in 1219; two
+years later, in 1221, Vsevolod was expelled, and the people called
+back that same Iaroslaf from whom they had been rescued by Mstislaf
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page060" name="page060"></a>(p. 060)</span> the Bold. Soon there was another dispute and <i>he</i> was sent
+about his business. Vsevolod of Smolensk was again made duke, but the
+people soon grew tired of him. At this time the Grand Duke of Souzdal
+interfered; he made Novgorod pay him tribute, and appointed a prince
+of Tchernigof as its duke; but he did not like the place and resigned.
+Then the city suffered from a famine, when 42,000 citizens perished
+and a fire destroyed a whole quarter of the city. Iaroslaf was made
+duke for the fourth time; the spirit of the people was broken, and he
+was permitted to rule over them as he pleased. He succeeded as grand
+duke in 1236, when he left his son Alexander Nevski as duke in
+Novgorod.</p>
+
+<p>The east coast of the Baltic was considered tributary to Novgorod.
+Several colonies had been established on the Düna and south of that
+river, but in the 12th and 13th centuries missionaries and merchants
+from Germany appeared and gradually penetrated as far as the Düna
+where Bishop Meinhard, in 1187, built a Roman Catholic Church and a
+fortress. The Livonians were converted much as St. Vladimir had made
+Christians of the people of Kief; but in this case, the people of
+Livonia revolted; in 1198 the second bishop was killed in battle, and
+the natives returned to the heathen gods. Pope Innocent III ordered a
+crusade against them. Another bishop sailed up the Düna with a fleet
+of twenty-three ships, and in 1200 founded Riga. The year after a
+religious society, the Sword-bearers, resembling the Templars, was
+installed in Livonia, and the natives appealed to the Duke of Polotsk
+for help. They marched upon Riga and were defeated in 1206.</p>
+
+<p>German <span class="pagenum"><a id="page061" name="page061"></a>(p. 061)</span> colonization proceeded actively under the
+Sword-bearers. Several cities were founded, and the country was
+divided into fiefs, according to the feudal system of Western Europe.
+The towns were modeled after Hamburg, Bremen, and Lübeck. Riga grew
+into a large and powerful city.</p>
+
+<p>In 1225, another religious-brotherhood, the Teutonic Order, entered
+into Lithuania, and twelve years later the two orders united. The
+introduction of the Roman Catholic religion carried with it the
+elements of Roman civilization, and did much toward estranging the
+natives of the Baltic provinces from the Russians of the east.</p>
+
+<p>Southwestern Russia, or Galitch, had, more than any other section,
+preserved the old Slav character. "The duke was a prince of the old
+Slavonic type. He was elected by a popular assembly, and kept his seat
+by its consent."<a id="footnotetag4" name="footnotetag4"></a><a href="#footnote4">[4]</a> The assembly was composed of boyards or nobles,
+and sometimes disputes occurred between them and the duke, which ended
+in more or less serious disorders. In 1188, the position was offered
+to Roman, Duke of Volhynia. He accepted, but before he could enter the
+capital, a duke who had been expelled was reinstalled. After his
+death, Roman entered the territory of Galitch, not as an elected duke,
+but as a conqueror at the head of an army, and treated the dukedom as
+a conquest. He was especially cruel to the boyards, treating their
+rights and privileges with scorn. Russian authors praise him; one of
+them says that he "walked in the ways of God, exterminated the
+heathen, flung himself like a lion upon the infidels, <i>was savage as a
+wild cat, deadly as a <span class="pagenum"><a id="page062" name="page062"></a>(p. 062)</span> crocodile</i>, swooped down on his prey
+like an eagle," which seem strange qualities for praise. Roman died in
+battle, in 1205. Mstislaf the Bold conquered Galitch and at his death,
+in 1228, his son-in-law Daniel became duke.</p>
+
+<p>We have seen that, in the 13th century, Russia was divided into a
+number of small states, most of them under a duke, but all possessing
+some degree of liberty, except in the north where the duke was being
+changed into an hereditary monarch. We have also seen that Russia was
+part of Europe, and that commercial relations were maintained. At the
+same time, just as there had been an invisible but none the less real
+dividing line between the Eastern Roman, or Byzantine, Empire and the
+west of Europe, so with the adoption of the Greek Church, Russia
+inherited the oriental type and principles which separated that form
+of Christianity from that of Rome. Thus the slight split grew
+gradually into a schism, as Western Europe progressed with every
+evolution of the Roman Church, whereas Russia remained stationary.</p>
+
+<p>Byzantium or Constantinople, situated at the easternmost edge of
+Europe, owing to its intimate association with the Persians who, at
+the time represented the Oriental character, was more of an oriental
+than a western city; its sympathies were also with its neighbors of
+the east. There was thus an oriental tendency in Russia as well as in
+the Byzantine Empire, and this vague sentiment enabled Russia to bend
+before a blast, which would have withered any nation of a more
+pronounced occidental character.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>VII&mdash;THE YELLOW PERIL. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page063" name="page063"></a>(p. 063)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>On the borders of the Chinese Empire, in the northeast of Asia, roamed
+a Mongol tribe, known as the Tartars or Tatars. A Chinese author of
+that time, described them as follows: "The Ta-tzis<a id="footnotetag5" name="footnotetag5"></a><a href="#footnote5">[5]</a> or Das occupy
+themselves exclusively with their flocks; they go wandering
+ceaselessly from pasture to pasture, from river to river. They are
+ignorant of the nature of a town or a wall. They are ignorant of
+writing and books; their treaties are concluded orally. From infancy
+they are accustomed to ride, to aim their arrows at rats and birds,
+and thus acquire the courage essential to their life of wars and
+destruction. They have neither religious ceremonies nor judicial
+institutions. From the prince to the lowest among the people, all are
+fed by the flesh of the animals whose skin they use for clothing. The
+strongest among them have the largest and fattest morsels at feasts;
+the old men are put off with the fragments that are left. They respect
+nothing but strength and courage; age and weakness are condemned."</p>
+
+<p>The people were, therefore, nomads, moving their flocks as necessity
+required, and occasionally making a raid upon a neighboring town.
+"They move on horseback;" says the Chinese author; "when they wish to
+capture <span class="pagenum"><a id="page064" name="page064"></a>(p. 064)</span> a town, they fall on the suburban villages. Each
+leader seizes ten men, and every prisoner is forced to carry a certain
+quantity of wood, stones, and other material. They use these for
+filling up moats or to dig trenches. In the capture of a town the loss
+of a myriad men was thought nothing. No place could resist them. After
+a siege, the entire population was massacred, without distinction of
+old or young, rich or poor, beautiful or ugly, those who resisted or
+those who yielded; no distinguished person escaped death, if a defense
+was attempted."</p>
+
+<p>These nomad Tartars were united by and under Genghis Khan (1154-1227),
+one of their chiefs or khans. He summoned all the khans of the several
+tribes, and before them took the title of emperor over all, declaring
+that, as there was only one sun in heaven, so there should be but one
+emperor on earth. At the head of his tribes, Genghis conquered
+Manchuria and North China; then he moved west. He himself remained in
+Asia, but two of his lieutenants proceeded in that direction, subduing
+the tribes on their way, and often joined by them. The long march had
+rendered the Tartars inured to hardship and wholly indifferent to
+danger. At last they passed by the southern shore of the Caspian Sea,
+and, crossing the Caucasus, commenced the invasion of Europe.</p>
+
+<p>The march of such a host could not be kept secret. When the Polovtsi,
+the old enemies of Russia, heard of the approach, they sent for help
+to the Christian dukes. "When they have taken our country, they will
+take yours," they said. Mstislaf the Bold of Galitch, urged that the
+assistance be granted, and the chief of the Polovtsi <span class="pagenum"><a id="page065" name="page065"></a>(p. 065)</span> agreed
+to enter the Greek Church. The Russians assembled on the lower
+Dnieper, where they were approached by some Tatar envoys who told them
+that they had "come by God's command against our slaves and grooms,
+the accursed Polovtsi. Be at peace with us; we have no quarrel with
+you." The envoys were arrested and put to death. The Russian army then
+moved eastward, and met the Tartar host at the Kalka, a small river
+running into the Sea of Azof. Instead of waiting for the troops still
+on the way, Mstislaf the Bold and his friends began the battle. While
+it was at its height, the Polovtsi were seized by a panic and, falling
+back, threw the Russians into disorder. The Russian army was routed;
+six dukes and seventy high boyards were left dead on the battlefield,
+and hardly a tenth of the army escaped. The Grand Duke of Kief still
+occupied a fortified camp on the Kalka. The Tartars offered to allow
+him and his drujina to retire upon payment of a ransom. He accepted,
+and was attacked by the Tartars after he had left his fortifications.
+He and his two sons were stifled under boards, and his guard was
+massacred.</p>
+
+<p>The Tartars at this time needed all their men to complete the conquest
+of China, and therefore the armies invading Europe were recalled,
+after southern Russia was at their mercy. The Russians did not inquire
+into the cause of this relief, but resumed their old life, confident
+that all danger was past.</p>
+
+<p>When the Tartars had made themselves masters of China, Bati, a nephew
+of Genghis, was dispatched westward to mark further conquests. He did
+not follow the same route but passed south of the Ural Mountains.
+Thirteen <span class="pagenum"><a id="page066" name="page066"></a>(p. 066)</span> years after the battle of the Kalka, Bati besieged
+and took the capital of the Bulgars, east of the grand dukedom of
+Souzdal (1237). As soon as the dukes of Central Russia heard this,
+they united against the Tartars, but the Grand Duke of Souzdal refused
+to join them. The Tartars sent envoys to the allied dukes. "If you
+want peace," they said, "give us the tenth of your goods." "When we
+are dead," was the proud reply, "you can have the whole." A battle was
+fought in which the Russians were crushed. Nearly all the dukes died
+on the battlefield; Riazan was stormed, sacked, and burned, and the
+other towns of that dukedom met the same fate.</p>
+
+<p>It was now the turn of Souzdal. The army of the grand duke was
+defeated on the Oka; Moscow was burned and Vladimir besieged. After an
+heroic defense, the Tartars took the city by assault, and many
+Russians were burned in the cathedral which was set on fire. Leaving
+ruin in their wake, the Tartars went in search of the grand duke who
+had taken a position on the Sit, near the frontiers of Novgorod. Here
+another battle was fought ending in disaster for the Russians. The
+headless corpse of the grand duke was found by the Bishop of Rostof.
+On swept the Asiatic hoards, as if nothing would stop them. At Torjok,
+"Russian heads fell beneath the sword of the Tartars as grass beneath
+the scythe." Leaving Souzdal behind, they entered the territory of
+Novgorod; but the dense forests and swollen rivers delayed them, and
+when within fifty miles of the city, they turned southeast. The little
+town of Kozelsk<a id="footnotetag6" name="footnotetag6"></a><a href="#footnote6">[6]</a> did not surrender but inflicted such a loss upon
+the invaders <span class="pagenum"><a id="page067" name="page067"></a>(p. 067)</span> that they mentioned it as "the wicked city."
+When it was captured, every man, woman, and child, was butchered.</p>
+
+<p>The years 1239 and 1240 were spent in ravaging southern Russia.
+Peréiaslaf and Tchernigof, after a desperate defense, were burned, and
+the Tartars under command of Genghis's grandson Mangou, marched upon
+Kief. Mangou offered terms, but Kief, knowing the fate of other
+cities, executed Mangou's envoys. The grand duke and his rival, Daniel
+of Galitch, fled from the city, but the people fought for their lives.
+Mangou was reënforced by Bati's army and the siege began. The walls
+were knocked to pieces by battering rams. "The people of Kief, led by
+the brave Dmitri, a Gallician boyard, defended the battered ramparts
+till the end of the day, and then retreated to the Church of the Dîme,
+which they surrounded by a palisade. The last defenders of Kief were
+grouped round the tomb of Iaroslaf. The next day they perished. Mangou
+gave the boyard his life, but the Mother of Russian Cities was sacked.
+This third pillage was the most terrible; even the tombs were not
+respected. All that remains of the Church of the Dîme is only a few
+fragments of mosaic in the museum at Kief. Saint Sophia and the
+Monastery of the Catacombs were delivered up to be plundered." Kief
+fell in 1240.</p>
+
+<p>There remained only Volhynia and Gallicia, which also bowed under the
+Tartar yoke. With the exception of Novgorod and the northwest, Russia
+was in possession of the Yellow race. The Russian dukes who had
+escaped carried the tale to Western Europe which was soon in a state
+of alarm. The Emperor of Germany wrote to the other <span class="pagenum"><a id="page068" name="page068"></a>(p. 068)</span>
+monarchs: "This is the moment to open the eyes of body and soul, now
+that the brave princes on whom we depended are dead or in slavery."
+The Pope called upon the Christian princes to take up arms. Meanwhile
+Bati continued his westward march and penetrated as far as Moravia,
+when he was recalled by the death of the second Tartar emperor. He
+withdrew to Russia and on the Volga built a city which he named
+Saraï&mdash;the Castle,&mdash;which became the capital of a Tartar empire
+extending from the Ural river and Caspian Sea to the mouth of the
+Danube, and is known as the Golden Horde.</p>
+
+<p>The first three successors of Genghis Khan are known as the Great
+Khans, and ruled over all the Tartars; but after Kublaï Khan
+established himself in China, in 1260, the Golden Horde declared its
+independence. So long as Bati lived, this khanate was united and
+powerful, but after his death, in 1257, it gradually lost strength. In
+1272, these Tartars became Mahomedans and spread that faith. The
+Golden Horde enjoyed another period of prosperity under the Khan
+Uzbeck.</p>
+
+<p>How did the Russians bear this blow? We have seen that Iaroslaf, the
+duke who had been expelled so many times from Novgorod, became Grand
+Duke of Souzdal. He found the country in Souzdal in ruins. Nothing was
+left of the towns and villages but charred remains; the inhabitants
+who had survived the Tartar massacres had fled into the forests.
+Iaroslaf's first work was to induce them to return and rebuild their
+homes. The Tartar general Bati heard of this and sent word to Iaroslaf
+to come to him. The grand duke dared not refuse. He went <span class="pagenum"><a id="page069" name="page069"></a>(p. 069)</span> to
+Saraï on the Volga where Bati told him that he might continue as grand
+duke, but that it would be best for him to pay a visit to the great
+khan, who was then on the Amoor in the far eastern part of Asia.
+Iaroslaf agreed; he started on his long journey, and after many months
+of travel through deserts and wastes, he arrived at the headquarters
+of the Tartars. There he was compelled to kneel before Oktaï, the
+successor of Genghis. It appears that some Russian boyards had
+preceded Iaroslaf hoping to secure favors from the khan, and that they
+accused the grand duke, but Oktaï refused to listen to them. After
+some delay Iaroslaf was confirmed as grand duke, and permitted to
+return, but he died from exhaustion in the desert, in 1246. His
+remains were brought to Vladimir.</p>
+
+<p>Iaroslaf left two sons, Andrew, who succeeded him in Souzdal, and
+Alexander who was duke at Novgorod. This younger son was an able as
+well as a brave man. On one occasion, when the Scandinavians had
+invaded Novgorod's territory aided by the Catholic Orders, Alexander
+had gained a great victory on the Neva, from which he is known in
+history as Alexander Nevski (1240). Upon his return to Novgorod he had
+a dispute with the vetché, and he left the city. After his departure
+the territory of the Republic was invaded by the German Sword-bearers
+who erected a fort on the Neva, captured Pskof, Novgorod's ally, and
+plundered merchants within a short distance of the walls. The people
+sent to Alexander Nevski, begging him to come to their rescue, and
+after several refusals he consented. Alexander collected an army,
+drove the Germans out of Pskof and their new fort, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page070" name="page070"></a>(p. 070)</span> and at
+last defeated them on the ice of Lake Peipus in 1242. This is known as
+the Battle on the Ice. Alexander then returned to Novgorod where he
+was received with honor and joy.</p>
+
+<p>Andrew, the Grand Duke of Souzdal, Alexander's brother, refused to
+recognize Bati's authority, whereupon a Tartar army ravaged his
+territory for the second time. Novgorod, as we have seen, had escaped
+the Tartar invasion, but when Alexander Nevski received a letter from
+Bati, in which the khan said, "God has subjected many peoples to me,
+will you alone refuse to recognize my power? If you wish to keep your
+land, come to me; you will see the splendor and the glory of my
+government." The duke thought it prudent to comply. He and his brother
+Andrew went to Saraï, where honors were showered upon the hero of the
+Neva. The two brothers were directed to visit the great khan, as their
+father Iaroslaf had done. They did so; and the Mongol emperor
+confirmed Andrew as Duke of Souzdal, but to Alexander's dukedom, he
+added Kief and South Russia. They returned from the Far East in 1257.</p>
+
+
+
+
+
+<h2>VIII&mdash;RUSSIA UNDER THE MONGOL YOKE. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page071" name="page071"></a>(p. 071)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>The Tartars did not interfere with the people, their institutions, or
+religion, but they demanded tribute in the form of an annual poll-tax.
+Officers called baskaks went from house to house to collect it, either
+in money or in furs, and those who could not pay were sold as slaves.
+Sometimes this collection caused disturbances. It was some time before
+the people of Novgorod would submit. When Bati sent his collectors to
+the Republic, the question was brought before the vetché where the
+possadnik urged the wisdom of paying the tax, but the people would not
+hear of it and promptly murdered the unfortunate burgomaster.
+Alexander, too, advised to avoid trouble, but the people refused and
+several boyards, including Alexander's son Vassili urged resistance.
+The duke acted vigorously. He ordered the arrest of his son, and had
+the boyards punished; but it was not before the people heard of the
+approach of a Tartar army, that they submitted. Still such was their
+resentment that Alexander had the baskaks guarded night and day. At
+last Alexander threatened to leave Novgorod with his drujina; then the
+people offered no further opposition to the collection of the hated
+poll-tax (1260). Two years later the people of Souzdal, Vladimir, and
+Rostof rose <span class="pagenum"><a id="page072" name="page072"></a>(p. 072)</span> against the baskaks and killed one of them, a
+Russian who had become a Mahomedan. Alexander, who had succeeded his
+brother Andrew as Grand Duke, decided to attempt to appease the khan
+by going himself to Saraï with presents; he also wished to be excused
+from furnishing a body of Russians to serve in the Tartar army. He
+succeeded, but was kept at the court of the khan for a year. His
+health broke down and he died on his return journey in 1263. The news
+of his death was brought to Novgorod, as mass was being said in the
+cathedral. The Metropolitan who was reading the service, interrupted
+it, and said, "Learn, my dear children, that the Sun of Russia has
+set,&mdash;is dead," and the people cried, "We are lost." The death of
+Alexander Nevski was a heavy blow to Russia.</p>
+
+<p>The Russians, that is the people of Russia whose story we are reading,
+did not mingle with any Tartar except the tax collector whom they did
+not like. The victors were nomads, who did not care to occupy the land
+they had conquered. When they did settle at Saraï on the Lower Volga,
+they absorbed the tribes who had lived there before the invasion, and
+who were not Russians, but nomads. The Russian <i>people</i> did not
+associate with the conquerors. It was at this time that the word
+<i>Krestianine</i> or "true Christian" was applied to the peasant, instead
+of the contemptuous term moujik.</p>
+
+<p>Whatever Asiatic characteristics were grafted upon the Russians, came
+to them through their kniazes and boyards. The dukes soon showed that
+all they cared for, was to hold their positions. After Alexander
+Nevski, there is not a single instance of a desire to relieve the
+people; <span class="pagenum"><a id="page073" name="page073"></a>(p. 073)</span> and the victors on their part never interfered so
+long as the tribute was paid regularly. The descendants of Andrew
+Bogolioubski were not disturbed in Souzdal; those of Roman continued
+to hold Galitch and Volhynia, and Oleg's house remained in possession
+of Tchernigof. The dukes might fight about Kief; Novgorod might
+appoint or expel its dukes,&mdash;the Tartars did not mind. But the khan
+did insist that the dukes should visit him and pay him homage. He also
+reserved the right of approving the succession of a duke, who was
+compelled to apply for a written consent, called an <i>iarlikh</i>. On one
+occasion when the people of Novgorod elected Duke Michael, they
+afterwards refused to recognize him, asserting that "it is true we
+have chosen Michael, but on condition that he should show us the
+iarlikh."</p>
+
+<p>The dukes, holding their possessions by favor of the khan, tried to
+gain his good-will and favor. Gleb, duke of Biélozersk married in the
+khan's family about 1272; Feodor of Riazan was the son-in-law of the
+khan of the Nogaïs. In 1318, the Grand Duke George married Kontchaka,
+sister of the Khan Uzbeck. It was the rulers, and not the people of
+Russia, that quietly submitted to the <i>Tartartchina</i> or Mongol yoke.</p>
+
+<p>The khans, while they did not care about the people took care that the
+dukes should show them slavish respect. In 1303, the dukes were
+convoked, and when they were assembled a letter from the khan was
+read, in which they were commanded to stop fighting because the great
+khan desired to see peace established. Whenever such a letter was
+brought, the dukes were directed to meet the envoys on foot, prostrate
+themselves, spread fine carpets under <span class="pagenum"><a id="page074" name="page074"></a>(p. 074)</span> their feet, present
+them with a cup filled with gold pieces, and listen, kneeling, while
+the letter was read.</p>
+
+<p>Children of the prairie and the desert, the Tartars had neither a
+religion nor a civilization to impose upon the Russian people. The
+khans were tolerant because they did not care. Koïyuk had a Christian
+chapel near his residence. In 1261, the Khan of Saraï gave permission
+for the erection of a Greek church in his capital, and he allowed a
+bishop to reside there. Mangou gave equal privileges to Christians,
+Jews, and Mahomedans.</p>
+
+<p>The dukes and boyards, paying court to the Tartars, gradually adopted
+their mode of dressing and, as they became Asiatic in appearance, they
+came under the influence of Asiatic thought. They dressed in a long
+caftan or flowing robe, wore a sort of turban on the head, swords and
+daggers in their belts, and when on horseback, sat in very high
+saddles with short stirrups. Dukes and boyards thus became
+semi-Asiatic, and drifted away from the people among whom the national
+principle was kept alive.</p>
+
+<p>Every succeeding visit to the khan served to increase the intimacy of
+the dukes and their Asiatic masters. It was not many years before the
+relation with the great khan was severed, but that with the Golden
+Horde was kept alive. A writer<a id="footnotetag7" name="footnotetag7"></a><a href="#footnote7">[7]</a> living at that time, who visited
+Saraï during Bati's life, gives the following description: "It (the
+court) is crowded and brilliant. His army consists of 600,000 men,
+150,000 of whom are Tartars, and 450,000 strangers, Christians as well
+as infidels. On Good Friday we were conducted to his tent, between two
+fires, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page075" name="page075"></a>(p. 075)</span> because the Tartars believe that a fire purifies
+everything, and robs even poison of its danger. <i>We had to make many
+prostrations</i>, and enter the tent without touching the threshold. Bati
+was on his throne with one of his wives; his brothers, his children,
+and the Tartar lords were seated on benches; the rest of the assembly
+were on the ground, the men on the right, the women on the left....
+The khan and the lords of the court emptied from time to time cups of
+gold and silver, while the musicians made the air ring with their
+melodies. Bati has a bright complexion; he is affable with his men,
+but inspires general terror." The same writer visited the court of the
+great khan, and in his description dwells upon the fact that it was
+not the Tartars who were most terrible, but the Russian dukes and
+nobles who accused one another and who sought to destroy their own
+countrymen by bribing the favorites. It was thus that Duke Michael of
+Tchernigof was murdered in 1246, and Duke Michael of Tver in 1319, by
+a Russian hireling of the Grand Duke of Moscow who was present when
+the foul deed was committed. Servile submission to the khans, a
+haughty demeanor towards their own people, became the characteristics
+of the dukes. "The dukes of Moscow," says a Russian author,<a id="footnotetag8" name="footnotetag8"></a><a href="#footnote8">[8]</a> "took
+the humble title of servants of the khan, and it was by this means
+that they became powerful monarchs." An English writer<a id="footnotetag9" name="footnotetag9"></a><a href="#footnote9">[9]</a> comes to the
+following evident conclusion: "The first czars of Muscovy were the
+political descendants, not of the Russian dukes, but of the Tartar
+khans."</p>
+
+<p>A gradual change came over the Golden Horde after the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page076" name="page076"></a>(p. 076)</span>
+Tartars departed from their nomadic life and settled in and about
+Saraï. They lost their warlike habits, and with them much of their
+vigor. They began to farm out the poll-tax, that is, they sold the
+right to collect the tax to merchants of Khiva, whose oppression was
+so great that the people of Souzdal revolted in 1262, Koursk in 1284,
+Kolomna in 1318, and Tver in 1327. But the oppression was greater when
+the dukes of Moscow farmed this tax, not only from their own subjects,
+but also from neighboring dukedoms. They were absolutely pitiless in
+collecting from the poor people as much as they could extort, and this
+was the disgraceful foundation of their wealth and power. The
+poll-tax, thereafter, was always a favorite source of revenue in
+Russia.</p>
+
+<p>Besides this tribute, the dukes were compelled to furnish soldiers to
+their masters. Soon after the conquest, we read of Russian dukes
+marching with the Tartars at the head of their drujinas, and of
+supplying them with infantry. In 1276 Boris of Rostof and others,
+followed Mangou Khan in the war against the tribes of the Caucasus,
+and helped to sack the town of Dediakof in Daghestan. This was
+excusable, because the enemy was an alien; but what can be thought of
+Prince Andrew, the unworthy son of Alexander Nevski, who, in 1281,
+induced the Tartars to aid him in pillaging Vladimir, Souzdal, Mourom,
+Moscow, and Peréiaslaf, and led in profaning churches and convents? In
+1284, when two descendants of Oleg were dukes of Koursk, one of them
+put his brother to death for having insulted the khan, and Russian
+historians blame not the murderer, but the victim, because he had
+aroused the khan's anger! In 1327, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page077" name="page077"></a>(p. 077)</span> the dukes of Moscow and
+Souzdal marched against Tver at the command of their Asiatic master.
+Such was the influence of the Tartar yoke.</p>
+
+<p>The Russian dukes and their nobles lost not only the principle of
+patriotism, but also that of personal honor. The unfortunate Russians
+henceforth were to them, not fellow-countrymen but "<i>tcherné</i>" "black
+people." The khans, with true political instinct looking to the
+perpetuation of this condition, gained the friendship of the Church,
+as they had that of the dukes. In 1313, the Khan Uzbeck, at the
+request of the Metropolitan or head of the Church of Moscow, ordered
+that the Church should retain its privileges, and that it should not
+be deprived of its property, because, he says, "these possessions are
+sacred, as they belong to men whose prayers preserve our lives and
+strengthen our armies." The churches and convents grew enormously
+rich. They received gifts of land, and the priests, so bribed, allied
+themselves with the heathen masters, and aided further in oppressing
+the people.</p>
+
+<p>The descendants of the dukes and drujinas lost the large and generous
+impulses of the old Norsemen, to make way for the Asiatic deformities
+of treachery, cruelty, cunning, and disregard of honor. Whatever came
+in the way of their own interests, was trampled under foot by fair
+means or foul. The boyards, too, were tainted by the example of the
+chiefs. The vast extent of the country, the sparsity of the
+population, the difficulties in the way of communication, and above
+all the general ignorance, prevented the appearance of a patriot who
+might have raised a truly national banner, and shaken off the yoke of
+the servile lackeys of the Tartars.</p>
+
+
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page078" name="page078"></a>(p. 078)</span>
+<a id="img006" name="img006"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/img006.jpg" width="500" height="308" alt="Moscow" title="Moscow">
+</div>
+<p class="figcenter">Moscow</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>IX&mdash;LITHUANIA AND MOSCOW. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page079" name="page079"></a>(p. 079)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>We have seen that the Tartar invasion stopped short of Novgorod, and
+turned southeast, thus leaving northwest Russia free. What are now
+known as the Baltic Provinces, was at that time covered with dense
+forests, inhabited by the Finns or Suomi, the Tchouds, Jmouds, and
+Lithuanians, all of the same race and speaking the same language, but
+constantly at war with one another. In the 13th century a chief named
+Mindvog, after killing his brothers and sons, united the tribes, and
+made himself master of Lithuania. He then invaded Russia whose dukes,
+suffering under the Tartar yoke, were unable to withstand him. He
+captured Grodno and Novogredek, when he was confronted by Alexander
+Nevsky and Daniel of Volhynia in front, and by the Knights of Livonia
+in his rear. In this extremity Mindvog sent to the Pope promising that
+he would be converted in return for his good services. Pope Innocent
+IV replied by sending a papal legate to Grodno, where Mindvog and his
+wife were baptized, and he was made King of Lithuania (1252). Soon
+after he had a dispute with the Livonian Knights to whom he was forced
+to cede the country of the Jmouds. He again became a pagan and,
+marching against the Knights, defeated them. Upon <span class="pagenum"><a id="page080" name="page080"></a>(p. 080)</span> his return
+from this expedition, he was murdered by a chief named Dovmont whom he
+had injured. Lithuania again fell into anarchy until another
+enterprising chief named Gedimin restored order in 1315.</p>
+
+<p>Gedimin invaded Russia, defeated a Russo-Tartar army in 1321, and took
+Tchernigof and Vladimir. He then went south, where the Russian cities
+readily opened their gates to him, hoping for relief from the Mongol
+yoke. He took the old capital Kief, and there had his sons baptized in
+the Greek church and tried to marry them into the families of Russian
+dukes. He established his capital at Wilna where he attracted many
+German artists and mechanics by granting them special privileges. He
+died a pagan, in 1340, dividing his country among his sons and his
+brother.</p>
+
+<p>One of his sons, Olgerd, succeeded in getting possession of the whole,
+and then started upon a career of conquest. He first attacked
+Novgorod, where one of his brothers had taken refuge, and made
+conquests east and south, until he reached the Black Sea. Although he
+was a pagan, Simeon the Proud, Grand Duke of Moscow, gave him his
+daughter; but this did not prevent Olgerd from waging war with
+Simeon's successors. In 1368, he defeated the Tartars of the Lower
+Dnieper, and destroyed Cherson in the Crimea.</p>
+
+<p>When he died he followed Gedimin's example by dividing his territories
+among his sons, but one of them, Jagellon, became sole ruler by
+putting his brothers to flight and his uncle to death. At this time
+the Russian language was adopted and with it the Greek Church,
+although Jagellon was still a pagan. When he married Hedwiga,
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page081" name="page081"></a>(p. 081)</span> the heiress to the Kingdom of Poland, he embraced the Roman
+Catholic church; in 1386, he went to Cracow, where he was crowned King
+of Poland, and soon after gave orders that his people must join the
+same church, converting them as Vladimir had introduced Christianity
+among the people of Kief. Jagellon made Cracow his capital. Some time
+afterwards one of his cousins, Vitovt, raised a revolt against him in
+Lithuania, and Jagellon was compelled to cede that territory to him.
+Thus Vitovt became Grand Duke of Lithuania.</p>
+
+<p>Vitovt married the sister of Vassili, Grand Duke of Moscow, and
+extended his domain toward the east. He invaded Smolensk, whose Grand
+Duke Sviatoslaf, when fighting in Russia, had taken a delight in
+impaling and burning alive Russian women and children. That savage had
+been killed in 1387, in a battle with the Lithuanians, and his son had
+succeeded him. Vitovt, before Smolensk, invited this prince and his
+brothers to visit him in his tent. They accepted and were warmly
+received, but when they were ready to depart, they were told that they
+were prisoners of war. Smolensk was taken by surprise, and pillaged.</p>
+
+<p>Vitovt contemplated the conquest of Russia. His territory bordered in
+the east on Souzdal and Riazan. He had defeated an army of Tartars in
+the south, and was making preparations for a bold stroke. Collecting
+an army of Lithuanians, Poles, Russians, and five hundred Knights of
+the Teutonic Order, he set out from Kief and came upon the Tartar army
+near Pultowa where, in 1399, he suffered a serious defeat. He
+recovered from this blow, and after some time began a war with the
+Teutonic Order <span class="pagenum"><a id="page082" name="page082"></a>(p. 082)</span> which he defeated in 1410, at the battle of
+the Tannenberg. He thereupon re-annexed the Jmoud country.</p>
+
+<p>Vitovt had given up his designs upon Russia; he planned to raise
+Lithuania into a kingdom, and to have a Metropolitan of its own,
+instead of being dependent upon the head of the Greek Church at
+Moscow. He succeeded in the last-named object, but met with a check in
+the former, and, as he was eighty years old, the disappointment caused
+an illness from which he died, in 1430. After his death, Lithuania had
+no more influence upon Russia. Sometimes it had a grand duke of its
+own, at other times it was united with Poland. In 1501, it became the
+property of the King of Poland, who added to his title that of Grand
+Duke of Lithuania. Its nobles spoke the Polish language.</p>
+
+<p>It was necessary to sketch in a few words the history of Lithuania,
+not only because it is part of Russia to-day, but because it has
+always been claimed by Russia. The history of that country, however,
+from the beginning of the 14th century, is centered about Muscovia,
+the territory of the Grand Duke of Moscow. At the time of the
+Lithuanian conquest, Muscovia was bounded on the north by Tver, on the
+east by Souzdal, on the south by Riazan, and on the west by Lithuania.
+It belonged to Alexander Nevski, who at his death left it to his son
+Daniel. Its area was increased by him by the towns of Peréiaslaf,
+Zabiesski and Kolomna. Daniel died in 1303, and was buried in the
+church of St. Michael the Archangel, which remained the burial place
+of the Muscovite princes until the time of Peter the Great.</p>
+
+<p>The <span class="pagenum"><a id="page083" name="page083"></a>(p. 083)</span> next grand duke was Daniel's son George, whose first act
+was to capture the Duke of Smolensk from whom he took the town of
+Mojaïsk. In 1304 the Grand Duke of Souzdal died. Michael of Tver
+claimed the succession as the eldest of the family, but George of
+Moscow contested it. Michael was supported by the boyards of Vladimir
+and the people of Novgorod; the khan at Saraï also declared in his
+favor, and Michael was installed. George, however, was not satisfied
+and began a war; he was defeated in battle, and twice besieged in
+Moscow. Suddenly he heard that the khan was dead; he hastened to
+Saraï, and there made friends with the new Khan Uzbeck, who gave him
+his sister Kontchaka in marriage, and ordered that George should have
+possession of Souzdal. He returned to Moscow with a Tartar army and
+Michael, considering the odds, proposed to cede Vladimir on condition
+that his own patrimony of Tver should remain intact. George refused,
+and the war broke out anew. Michael defeated him and captured
+Kontchaka and the Tartar general, but he released his prisoners, and
+the dispute was again brought before the khan. George took good care
+to be at Saraï, and having ample means at his disposal from his
+poll-tax collecting, distributed bribes right and left. Michael,
+confident in the justice of his cause, committed the mistake of
+sending his twelve-year-old son in charge of high boyards, to
+represent him; but when he was informed of George's methods, he, too,
+proceeded to Saraï, after making his will. Upon his arrival, he was
+accused of having drawn his sword upon the Khan's envoy, and of having
+poisoned Kontchaka. Uzbeck would not even listen to such absurd
+complaints, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page084" name="page084"></a>(p. 084)</span> but George invented other falsehoods, and at
+last Michael was arrested. The khan went on a hunting trip in the
+Caucasus, and the wretched Duke of Tver was dragged after him in
+chains. One day he was put in the pillory in the market of a populous
+town, where the people crowded around him to look at the man who, a
+short time before, was a powerful prince in his own country. Michael's
+boyards urged him to escape, but he dreaded the khan's vengeance upon
+his family and people. George increased his bribes, and thus secured
+the order that Michael should be put to death.</p>
+
+<p>One of Michael's pages came to the tent occupied by him, and told him
+that George and a Tartar general were approaching. "I know what their
+object is," said the unfortunate duke. He at once sent his young son
+to one of the khan's wives, who had promised to protect the child. The
+two men came to the tent and ordered the Tver boyards to leave. Hired
+assassins were called in, and a Russian ruffian named Romanetz stabbed
+the unfortunate duke. When George and the Tartar entered, they saw the
+nude corpse; it had been despoiled. The Tartar was shocked. "What!" he
+cried, "Will you allow the body of your uncle to be outraged!" George
+only smiled; but one of his attendants threw a cloak over the murdered
+man.</p>
+
+<p>When Michael's children grew up, one of his sons, Dmitri of the
+Terrible Eyes, secured some friends at the khan's court. He obtained
+the title of grand duke, and a baskak received orders to install him.
+When George heard this, he hurried to Saraï; there the two men met,
+and Dmitri, drawing his sword, killed his father's <span class="pagenum"><a id="page085" name="page085"></a>(p. 085)</span> murderer
+(1325). Dmitri was arrested and put to death by order of the khan, but
+his brother Alexander was permitted to succeed him at Tver.</p>
+
+<p>This duke was in sympathy with the people. Suffering under the
+oppression of the Tartar tax collectors, the people revolted under the
+leadership of Alexander. The palace of the baskak was attacked, and he
+and his attendants were killed. Uzbeck, incited by Ivan Kalita,
+George's brother and successor at Moscow, prepared to take revenge,
+when Ivan volunteered to punish Tver, as well as Riazan and Novgorod
+which had given evidence of sympathy. The offer was accepted, and Ivan
+at the head of a Muscovite army reënforced by 50,000 Tartars marched
+upon the doomed city. Alexander and his brothers fled. Tver and two
+other cities were sacked, the Duke of Riazan was put to death, and
+Novgorod had to pay a heavy fine. Ivan thought that his services would
+procure him Tver and Riazan, but Uzbeck did not intend to extend the
+power of the treacherous family, and Constantine, another son of
+Michael, was made Duke of Tver. He and Ivan went to Saraï, where the
+latter was ordered to bring Alexander before the khan. The prince had
+found an asylum in Pskof, where Ivan's messengers appeared to demand
+his surrender. The envoys urged him to give himself up under the plea
+"not to expose a Christian people to the wrath of the infidels." The
+people of Pskof thought otherwise. "Do not go to the Horde, my lord,"
+said they; "whatever happens, we will die with you." Alexander refused
+to obey the summons, and the people of Pskof began to construct a new
+fort. Ivan Kalita, the Grand Duke of Moscow, persuaded the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page086" name="page086"></a>(p. 086)</span>
+Metropolitan to place Alexander and Pskof under the ban of the Church,
+which was done. We see here a Christian prince persecuting a relative,
+and a Christian priest excommunicating a Christian people,&mdash;all to
+please an infidel conqueror! Still the people of Pskof refused to
+yield, but Alexander left the city and took refuge in Lithuania. Then
+Pskof informed Ivan of his departure, saying, "Alexander is gone; all
+Pskof swears it, from the smallest to the greatest, popes,<a id="footnotetag10" name="footnotetag10"></a><a href="#footnote10">[10]</a> monks,
+nuns, orphans, women, and children." (1329.)</p>
+
+<p>Some years afterwards an attempt was made by Alexander to recover
+Tver. He went to Saraï with some of his boyards. There he made
+submission. "Lord, all-powerful Czar," he said, "if I have done
+anything against you, I have come hither to receive of you life or
+death. Do as God inspires you; I am ready for either." Uzbeck pardoned
+him and Alexander returned to Tver. This did not please Ivan Kalita,
+who knew that he was hated everywhere, and that his enemies only
+needed a leader. He went to Saraï where he told Uzbeck that Alexander
+was a very dangerous enemy to the Tartars. Alexander was summoned to
+appear and when he complied, he was arrested, condemned to death, and
+beheaded.</p>
+
+
+
+
+
+
+<h3>X&mdash;DECLINE OF THE TARTAR POWER. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page087" name="page087"></a>(p. 087)</span></h3>
+
+<h5>DMITRI DONSKOI.</h5>
+
+
+<p>Crafty and unscrupulous, the grand dukes of Moscow were feared by
+their neighbors. Ivan Kalita, as farmer of the poll-tax, grew
+immensely wealthy. He collected a double tax from Novgorod, which the
+republic, although allied with Lithuania, dared not refuse. He bought
+several towns, besides land in the neighborhood of Vladimir, Rostof,
+and Kostroma. His title was still Grand Duke of Vladimir, but Moscow
+was the real capital. Ivan took very good care to stand well with the
+Church. He built convents and churches, and never went out without an
+alms-bag or <i>kalita</i> to give money to the poor; hence his surname. The
+seat of the Metropolitan was still at Vladimir, but he often came to
+Moscow, and finally moved there; so that it became also the capital of
+the Church. It is reported that the Metropolitan said to Ivan, "God
+will bless you and raise you above all other dukes, and this city
+above all other cities. Your house will reign in this place during
+many centuries; their hands will conquer all their enemies; the saints
+will make their dwelling here, and here my bones shall rest."</p>
+
+<p>When Ivan with the Alms-bag died in 1341, he left the bulk <span class="pagenum"><a id="page088" name="page088"></a>(p. 088)</span>
+of his possessions to his eldest son Simeon, and gave only small
+estates to his other children; he also forbade that Moscow's territory
+should be divided. His body was scarcely in the grave before the dukes
+of Tver and Souzdal were on the way to Saraï to claim the grand
+dukedom of Vladimir; they were supported by other dukes who disliked
+and dreaded the Muscovite family. Simeon hurried after them, well
+provided with some of his father's treasure. He used it so well, that
+he received the iarlikh, and was installed at Vladimir. Servile toward
+the khan, he was overbearing toward the other Russian dukes, which
+procured for him the surname of the Proud. He was the first to assume
+the title of Grand Duke of all the Russias; and, acting in that
+capacity, he graciously confirmed the charter of Novgorod, for which
+he demanded and obtained payment. Simeon died in 1353 of the "black
+death," a pestilence which was imported from Asia.</p>
+
+<p>Great changes were taking place at Saraï, in the Khan of the Golden
+Horde. Its power was broken by internal discord, when Mourout, the
+legal heir of Bati, was attacked by a rival Mamaï, who succeeded in
+establishing himself at Saraï. Simeon was succeeded by his brother,
+Ivan II, an easy-going, good-natured man whose reign of six years did
+not increase the influence of Moscow. At his death, in 1359, he left
+several minor children, the oldest of whom was Dmitri, a boy of
+twelve. Dmitri of Souzdal went to Saraï&mdash;and secured the iarlikh,
+which made him Grand Duke of Vladimir, but Alexis, the Metropolitan,
+was loyal to Ivan's children, and appealed to the khan in the name of
+his young ward. Mourout, the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page090" name="page090"></a>(p. 090)</span> heir of Bati, declared in his
+favor, and young Dmitri was taken to Vladimir escorted by an army, and
+installed. (1363.)</p>
+
+<a id="img007" name="img007"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/img007.jpg" width="400" height="425" alt="Dmitri Donskoï" title="Dmitri Donskoï">
+</div>
+<p class="figcenter">Dmitri Donskoï</p>
+
+<p>The appointment was disputed by the dukes of Tver, Souzdal, and
+Riazan. Dmitri of Souzdal held an iarlikh from Mourout's opponent, and
+tried to enter in Vladimir, but was expelled. The Metropolitan
+excommunicated the opponents of Ivan's son, who held the fort as Grand
+Duke. Young Dmitri made war upon the Duke of Tver, and after a seven
+years' struggle (1368-1375), compelled him to renounce his claims.</p>
+
+<p>Dmitri was summoned before the Khan, in 1371. He went but what he saw
+at Saraï convinced him that the Tartars were no longer able to uphold
+their authority. He did not hesitate to engage in a struggle with
+Riazan, although it was supported by a Tartar army. Thereafter, when
+orders arrived from the khan, Dmitri ignored them. In 1376, he sent a
+large army to Kazan on the Volga, and forced two Mongol chiefs to pay
+tribute. Two years later, in 1378, a battle was fought between Dmitri
+and one of Mamaï's generals in Riazan, when the Tartars were defeated,
+which made the grand duke exclaim: "Their time is come, and God is
+with us!" The khan sent an army to ravage Riazan, and made
+preparations to reëstablish his authority at Moscow.</p>
+
+<p>To make sure of success, Mamaï took two years to collect an immense
+army and to mature his plans. This could not remain secret to the
+Russians, who, aroused by Dmitri, laid aside their private feuds to
+make common cause against the infidels. A large number of dukes
+assembled at Moscow, and even the Lithuanians promised to <span class="pagenum"><a id="page091" name="page091"></a>(p. 091)</span>
+send troops to Kostroma where the Russian army was gathering. The
+Metropolitan assured Dmitri of the victory, and sent two monks to go
+with the troops. Making the sign of the Cross on their cowls, he said,
+"Behold a weapon which faileth never!"</p>
+
+<p>Russia was united against the Mongol; all the dukes, with the
+exception of those of Tver and Riazan, lent their aid. These two
+dreaded Moscow's power, and the Duke of Riazan tried to conclude an
+alliance with Jagellon of Lithuania and Mamaï.</p>
+
+<p>Dmitri, at the head of an army estimated at 150,000 men, marched
+through Riazan to the Don where the Tartars were drawn up, awaiting
+the reinforcements of their ally Jagellon, who was still fifteen
+leagues distant. Dmitri resolved to fight the Tartars before a
+junction could be effected. He crossed the Don and met the enemy on
+the plain of Koulikovo,&mdash;the Field of the Woodcocks,&mdash;where a furious
+battle was fought. It was decided by a sudden attack upon the Tartars
+from an ambush, which threw them into a panic. The Tartars were
+routed; Mamaï's camp, his chariots and camels, were all captured.
+Dmitri was found in a swoon from loss of blood. He was surnamed
+Donskoï, in honor of this victory. (1380.)</p>
+
+<p>It seemed as if the end of the Mongol yoke had come, when another
+great leader appeared among them. Tamerlane, after conquering Bokhara,
+Hindostan, Iran, and Asia Minor, entered Europe, and ordered Mamaï to
+be put to death. He summoned Dmitri Donskoï to appear before him, and
+received a curt refusal. Tamerlane sent one of his generals with an
+immense army to Moscow, and Dmitri, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page092" name="page092"></a>(p. 092)</span> not finding the former
+support, went to Kostroma to collect troops. The Tartars appeared
+before Moscow, which they tried to carry by assault but failed. They
+pretended to enter into negotiations, when they surprised the gates
+and Moscow was delivered up to fire and sword. It is said that 24,000
+inhabitants were slaughtered. Vladimir and other towns suffered the
+same fate.</p>
+
+<p>It is told that Dmitri wept when he saw the charred remains of his
+capital after the Tartars had withdrawn. There was nothing for it but
+to make peace with the khan, and once more the Tartar tax gatherers
+went their rounds. But Dmitri's heart was sore against the Dukes of
+Tver and Riazan who had abetted Mamaï, and Novgorod, which had used
+the opportunity of Moscow's distress to plunder some of its towns.
+After the country had sufficiently recovered, he compelled the Duke of
+Riazan to conclude "a perpetual peace," and Novgorod paid an indemnity
+besides agreeing to an annual tribute.</p>
+
+<p>When Dmitri died in 1389, he left Moscow the most powerful of Russian
+dukedoms. He was succeeded by his eldest son Vassili, with the consent
+of his cousin Vladimir, who was the eldest of the family. Vassili
+mentioned Novgorod as "his patrimony," and acted as if the republic
+was his private property. He visited Saraï in 1392, and while there
+bought an iarlikh, which placed him in possession of Souzdal, Nishni
+Novgorod, and Mourom. In 1393, the people of Novgorod revolted, but
+Vassili's army convinced them that the republic was fast losing its
+former power.</p>
+
+<p>At this time Tamerlane, dissatisfied with his generals, arrived in
+Europe and after pillaging the Golden Horde, moved <span class="pagenum"><a id="page093" name="page093"></a>(p. 093)</span> westward,
+spreading ruin and desolation. He drew near to Moscow, where the
+famous eikon of the Virgin was taken in solemn procession, when the
+Tartar army stopped and turned to the south, where Azof, Astrakhan,
+and Saraï, were plundered and destroyed. (1395.) After Tamerlane's
+withdrawal, Vassili pretended not to know to whom to pay the
+tribute,&mdash;and so paid none at all. The Tartars under Ediger marched
+upon Moscow to collect it, but the city was bravely defended and
+Ediger, fearing an invasion from Asia, agreed to accept a ransom of
+3000 rubles, which was paid by the boyards.</p>
+
+<p>More dangerous were the attacks of Vitovt of Lithuania, Vassili's
+father-in-law, who marched three times against Moscow. Both Vitovt and
+Vassili were indisposed to risk a decisive battle, fearing that, if
+defeated, their enemies would despoil them. In 1408 a treaty was
+signed whereby the Ouger was made the frontier between them. This gave
+Smolensk to Lithuania, and Kozelsk to Moscow.</p>
+
+<p>Vassili extended his territory, and with it his name; one of his
+daughters married the Byzantine Emperor, John Palaeologus. At his
+death, in 1425, he left his territory to his son Vassili, the Blind,
+whose title was contested by his uncle George, on the ground of being
+the eldest of the family. The dispute was submitted to the khan, in
+1431. Both sides humbled themselves, but the argument of Vassili's
+boyards prevailed. "My Lord Czar," they said to the khan, "let us
+speak,&mdash;us, the slaves of the grand duke. Our master, the grand duke,
+prays for the throne of the grand dukedom, which is your property,
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page094" name="page094"></a>(p. 094)</span> having no other title but your protection, your investiture,
+and your iarlikh. You are master and can dispose of it according to
+your good pleasure. My Lord, the Duke George, his uncle, claims the
+grand dukedom by the act and will of his father, but not as a favor
+from the all-powerful." Vassili the Blind, was the first grand duke to
+be crowned at Moscow instead of at Vladimir.</p>
+
+<p>His reign was disturbed by constant wars with his uncle, and
+afterwards with his cousins. In 1446 he was taken prisoner by one of
+the latter, who ordered his eyes to be put out. In 1450, peace was
+restored when the second son of George died of poison. Notwithstanding
+the loss of his sight Vassili displayed considerable energy in
+reëstablishing his authority. Novgorod was forced to pay another
+indemnity, and to give a written promise that in future all deeds
+would be void unless stamped with the seal of the grand duke.</p>
+
+<p>The most remarkable incident of Vassili's reign was the Council at
+Florence, Italy, in 1449, where delegates of the Roman and Greek
+Churches tried to effect a union. There were seventeen Metropolitans,
+among them Isidore of Moscow, who signed the Act of Union. When
+Isodore returned and declared what he had done, a great opposition
+appeared. Vassili himself insulted the Metropolitan, who fled to Rome.
+In 1453, Mahomet II captured Constantinople when a host of priests,
+monks, artists, and learned men fled from the extinct Byzantine
+Empire, to find an asylum in Russia.</p>
+
+<p>While nothing resulted from the Council of Florence, owing to the
+opposition of members of the Greek Church, the fall of Constantinople
+left a deep impression upon Russia, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page095" name="page095"></a>(p. 095)</span> which chose to consider
+itself as the heir to the Byzantine Empire. More than this, the
+influence of the men who found a refuge in Russia, served to inoculate
+the country of their adoption with the semi-oriental civilization
+which had distinguished Constantinople from Western Europe. The time,
+too, was propitious. Russia was gradually recovering from the blow of
+Tartar rule, which had marred its progress during two centuries. Here
+was, therefore, to all intent and purposes, a virgin soil, which
+promised to yield a rich harvest to whatever principles were planted
+in it. It might even regenerate the decaying elements of the Byzantine
+civilization.</p>
+
+
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page096" name="page096"></a>(p. 096)</span>
+<a id="img008" name="img008"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/img008.jpg" width="400" height="486" alt="Ivan III" title="Ivan III">
+</div>
+<p class="figcenter">Ivan III</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XI&mdash;IVAN III, THE GREAT. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page097" name="page097"></a>(p. 097)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>Vassili's eldest son Ivan was born in 1440. It is said that upon the
+occasion of his birth, an old monk at Novgorod had a vision which he
+reported to the Archbishop. "Truly," he said, "it is to-day that the
+grand duke triumphs; God has given him an heir; I behold this child
+making himself illustrious by glorious deeds. He will subdue princes
+and nations. But woe to Novgorod! Novgorod will fall at his feet, and
+never rise again."</p>
+
+<p>Vassili, wishing to avoid the disputes incident upon the succession,
+during his lifetime admitted Ivan as co-regent. Upon his father's
+death, in 1462, Ivan was twenty-two years old. He succeeded without
+the usual disturbances, and the first six years of his reign were
+uneventful. In 1468, he gained forcible possession of his brother
+George's estate, and allowed him to die in prison. When he heard of
+his death,&mdash;he wept. Another brother, Andrew, was in his way, and was
+flung into prison, whereupon Ivan called the Metropolitan and bishops
+to his palace, wept some more, and confessed that he had been too
+severe;&mdash;but he forgot to restore Andrew's property. When his third
+brother, Boris, died, Ivan seized the estate and kept it; but he wept
+some more.</p>
+
+<p>This <span class="pagenum"><a id="page098" name="page098"></a>(p. 098)</span> soft-hearted but tenacious gentleman found fault with
+his neighbor, Michael of Tver, for entering into an alliance with
+Lithuania. To settle the difficulty, he invaded the dukedom, and
+annexed it to Moscow. Then, having his hands free, he thought of
+Novgorod. The Germans of the Hanseatic League had formed a colony in
+the old republic, which had grown very wealthy. Ivan looked upon that
+wealth as his; if it was not, it ought to be. Acting upon this
+satisfactory conclusion, he remembered that the people of Novgorod had
+omitted to do him homage when he succeeded his father. They had even
+failed to appreciate the gentle letter of remonstrance in which he
+reminded them of their oversight. Good-natured as he knew himself to
+be, he could not afford to encourage such a rebellious spirit; but,
+being a careful man, he concluded that it would be more humane as well
+as cheaper to try the gentle means of bribery. His gold, distributed
+where it would do most good, procured him a large party. The
+opposition was led by a woman named Marfa, the wealthy widow of a
+possadnik. She urged that the republic should ask the help of Casimir
+IV, King of Poland, but Ivan's friends in the vetché replied that, if
+Poland should win, the Roman Catholic Church would enter, whereas
+Russia was at least loyal to the Greek Church.</p>
+
+<p>Marfa's influence prevailed; the republic submitted to Poland, on
+condition that its charter should be respected. Gentle Ivan despatched
+some Envoys to warn the people of the error of their ways, and when
+that did no good, he hired Tartar cavalry, overran the territory of
+the republic, and directed his troops to cut off the noses and lips
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page099" name="page099"></a>(p. 099)</span> of the prisoners. It is probable that he wept, although
+history omits mentioning the fact. Novgorod was unprepared; a mob was
+collected and styled an army, and in the battle of the Chelona, 3,000
+trained troops put to flight 30,000 citizen soldiers. Novgorod was
+lost. Ivan kindly permitted the name "republic" to continue, but his
+authority was admitted. He also received a share of the wealth as an
+indemnity. (1470.)</p>
+
+<p>Two years later he married the niece and supposed heiress of the last
+Byzantine emperor. Her father, Thomas Palaeologus, had fled to Rome
+where he died leaving one daughter Sophia. Pope Paul II wished to find
+her a husband, and Cardinal Bessarion of the Greek Church advised him
+to offer her hand to Ivan. The offer was accepted; Sophia received a
+dower from the Pope who still hoped to unite the two churches, and the
+bride was received with great honor in Ivan's territory. The grand
+duke probably had his eye on Constantinople, but deferred his claim to
+some favorable opportunity. With Sophia came many Greek nobles,
+artists, and learned men. Ivan, as may be judged from his gentle
+nature, was a patron of art, and had no prejudice against foreigners.
+Several Italians came to Moscow where their services were appreciated.</p>
+
+<p>Ivan left Novgorod in peace during five years, when he thought it time
+to familiarize the citizens with the fact that their republic was a
+thing of the past. He needed a pretext; by a judicious use of money,
+his agents raised a mob against the boyards, who, being assaulted,
+invoked the strong arm of the law, in the person of Ivan. The grand
+duke came to Novgorod in 1475, to hold court. He <span class="pagenum"><a id="page100" name="page100"></a>(p. 100)</span> at once
+ordered the arrest of the possadnik, Marfa's son, and a number of
+boyards who believed in a republic, had them put in chains and carried
+to Moscow. This was in violation of the charter, but Ivan had an
+elastic conscience. Next he tempted a scribe to mention him as
+<i>Sovereign</i> instead of "lord," in an official document; and when, in a
+last effort to save the republic, Marfa's partisans killed a number of
+Ivan's friends, it was evidently his duty to restore order.</p>
+
+<p>Upon his return to Moscow, he announced that Novgorod was the enemy of
+the Greek Church, and the ally of the Pope and of Lithuania. This so
+alarmed the Metropolitan and the priests that they begged Ivan to make
+war upon the wicked city. Many dukes and boyards, moved by loyalty for
+the church, and perhaps scenting spoils, flocked to his camp. Marfa's
+partisans in vain tried to arouse the citizens by the cry, "Let us die
+for liberty and St. Sophia!" It fell on deaf ears; every one for
+himself, was the general thought. Novgorod surrendered. Ivan
+guaranteed,&mdash;for just so long as it should suit him,&mdash;the people's
+lives and property, their ancient code of laws, and exemption from
+Muscovite service; but the vetché and office of possadnik were
+abolished, and with them died the republic. (1478.)</p>
+
+<p>Having settled with Novgorod to his satisfaction, Ivan bethought
+himself of establishing peace in his own household. Russian writers
+state that his wife, Sophia, annoyed him by often repeating the
+interesting inquiry, "How long am I to be the slave of the Tartars?"
+The Khan of the Golden Horde had been dissolved since Tamerlane's
+raid; several states had been formed from it, of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page101" name="page101"></a>(p. 101)</span> which the
+principal were Kazan, Saraï or Astrakhan, and the Crimea. Kazan was
+ruled by a czar; its people were the descendants of Mongols and
+Bulgars who had made great progress in commerce. The Khan of Saraï and
+his men clung to the life of nomads; but the subjects of the Khan of
+the Crimea, were Mongols, Armenians, Greeks, Jews, and Italians; and
+all three had this in common that they were constantly indulging in
+quarrels and strife at home.</p>
+
+<p>Ivan knew all this, because sometimes a chief would come to Moscow for
+an asylum, and others took service in his army. He no longer sent
+tribute, although occasionally, when he was occupied elsewhere, he did
+send a small present. In 1478 Khan Akhmet sent ambassadors to Moscow
+to remind him that the tribute was in arrears. Ivan, who had
+apparently a wonderful command over his features, pretended to lose
+his temper, jumped on the picture of the khan, and ordered all the
+envoys except one to be put to death. The survivor was told to go
+home, and tell his master of his reception.</p>
+
+<p>Ivan had reasonable cause for thinking that Akhmet would be
+displeased, and collected an army of 150,000 men on the Oka, where he
+took up a strong position. He had been right in his conjecture, for
+Akhmet gathered an army and in due time arrived on the opposite bank
+of the river. Ivan had time to reflect. He did not much fancy risking
+a decisive battle, and returned to Moscow to consult his mother, the
+boyards, and the priests. All urged him to fight, and finally he came
+back to the camp, convinced that scheming and plotting were more in
+his line. All this time the two armies lay within earshot, exchanging
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page102" name="page102"></a>(p. 102)</span> complimentary remarks, with no casualties. The khan offered
+to pardon Ivan on condition that he should come and hold his stirrup;
+or, if he were too tired, if he should send some high officer to do it
+in his name. Ivan shook his head. Meanwhile the priests at Moscow were
+growing impatient, and the Archbishop Vassian sent him a warm letter.
+It happened that Akhmet was quite as prudent as Ivan; but when the
+winter came and the Oka, instead of a barrier, became an easy
+crossing, Ivan ordered the retreat. Just then the two armies, led by
+such brave commanders, were seized with a panic, and away they fled in
+opposite directions. (1480.) The honors were with Ivan, because he did
+not have so far to run as Akhmet, who did not stop until he reached
+Saraï. It is not stated why Ivan received no surname from this great
+battle.</p>
+
+<p>The following year, 1481, Ivan had sufficiently recovered to show the
+courage he possessed. There was a disturbance in Novgorod, where the
+people did not appreciate the nobility of his character. He ordered
+some of the boyards to be tortured and put to death, and <i>eight
+thousand</i> citizens were forcibly packed off to Souzdal.</p>
+
+<p>In fear of his doughty enemy Akhmet, Ivan made friends with the Khan
+of the Crimea, calculating that if the former should attack him again,
+he would have to look out for his rear. Akhmet, however, seemed to
+have had enough of it, and Ivan, who was on bad terms with Lithuania
+and Poland, suggested to his friend that a raid into those territories
+might pay. The Khan of the Crimea took the hint; he penetrated as far
+as Kief which he captured and pillaged. (1482.) The famous monastery
+of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page103" name="page103"></a>(p. 103)</span> the Catacombs was almost destroyed; but Ivan had the
+satisfaction of knowing that his two enemies had other things to think
+of, instead of annoying him.</p>
+
+<p>In 1487 war broke out with Kazan. A Russian army marched against it,
+but Ivan did not take command. As a result, the city was taken and the
+khan, who had assumed the title of czar, was brought a prisoner to
+Moscow. Fearing that he would unite the other Tartars against him if
+he annexed the territory at once, he appointed a nephew of his friend,
+the Khan of the Crimea, but placed Russian soldiers in the fortress,
+while he added the title of Prince of Bulgaria to his own. Other
+Tartar princes sent envoys to protest against the arrest. Ivan did not
+receive them in person, and refused to release the prisoner, but he
+ordered the envoys to be treated with great honor and gave them so
+many presents, that they returned in great good humor.</p>
+
+<p>In 1492, the King of Poland died, leaving that kingdom to his eldest
+son Albert, and Lithuania to his second son Alexander. Ivan was justly
+indignant that he had not been remembered in the will. He sent envoys
+to Bajazet II, Sultan of Turkey, to the Kings of Hungary and Moldavia,
+and to his old friend the Khan of the Crimea, to secure their
+assistance or at least their kind neutrality. Of the services of the
+Khan of the Crimea he felt assured.</p>
+
+<p>He began by discovering a Polish plot against his life at Moscow, and
+appealed to the religious prejudices of the Lithuanian nobles
+belonging to the Greek Church, omitting to mention his little
+arrangement with the infidel sultan. When Alexander sent envoys to
+negotiate terms <span class="pagenum"><a id="page104" name="page104"></a>(p. 104)</span> of peace, Ivan's deputies said to them:
+"Lithuania has profited by the misfortunes of Russia to take our
+territory, but to-day things are changed." They were right. When peace
+was concluded in 1494, Ivan's frontier in the west was extended.</p>
+
+<p>The marriage of Alexander to Ivan's daughter seemed to end the
+hostility between the two countries, but nothing was further from the
+schemes of the wily grand duke. He stipulated that she should have a
+Greek chapel in the palace, and warned her never to appear in a
+Catholic church, and always to wear the Russian national dress. Soon
+after the wedding Ivan complained that his daughter was forced to wear
+Polish costumes, and that the Greek Church was being persecuted. These
+were to him ample cause for war, the more so since he had good reason
+to count upon his friends, the priests and boyards of the Greek
+Church. When the war broke out, cities where the majority of the
+people belonged to that church, opened their gates to his army, and
+Alexander was badly defeated in the battle of Vedrocha. This war added
+another slice to Ivan's territory.</p>
+
+<p>Alexander in his distress made an alliance with the Livonian Order and
+with the Great Horde at Saraï; but Ivan's old friend, the Khan of the
+Crimea, made a raid in Gallicia and Volhynia, and the Lithuanians were
+defeated at Mstislaf; but they compelled the Russians to raise the
+siege of Smolensk. Meanwhile Ivan had serious trouble. In 1495, he
+ordered the merchants of several Hanseatic towns to be arrested at
+Novgorod, and incidentally had goods to the value of $200,000,&mdash;an
+immense sum in those days,&mdash;carried to Moscow. This caused <span class="pagenum"><a id="page105" name="page105"></a>(p. 105)</span>
+the foreign merchants to leave for safer places; but the Livonian
+Order invaded his territory, and in the battle of Siritza, they
+crushed a Russian army of 50,000 men, but the following year, 1502,
+they were defeated at Pskof.</p>
+
+<p>Toward the end of his life he was in doubt about his successor,
+because his eldest son was dead. At first he thought of making his
+grandson Dmitri, his heir; but he changed his mind, sent his
+daughter-in-law and grandson to prison and proclaimed his second son
+Vassili his heir. He died in 1505, after a reign of forty-three years.
+It was under his direction that a new code of laws, the Oulogenia, was
+prepared.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XII&mdash;RUSSIA BECOMES AN AUTOCRACY. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page106" name="page106"></a>(p. 106)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>Vassili, Ivan's son, showed a great resemblance to his father. He did
+not evince any greater love for his near relatives, as one of his
+first acts was to put his nephew Dmitri in prison, where he died. One
+of his brothers who did not like his manners, tried to escape, but was
+brought back and severely punished.</p>
+
+<p>The republic of Pskof, and the dukedoms of Riazan and
+Novgorod-Seversky were still enjoying some degree of liberty, which
+Vassili did not approve. At Pskof, the grand duke was represented by
+<i>a namiestnik</i>, or ducal delegate; the people, citizens and peasants,
+nobles and lower classes, quarreled constantly among themselves, but
+united to quarrel with the delegate. Vassili determined to put an end
+to this. He came to Novgorod to hold court, and summoned the
+magistrates of Pskof to appear before him, and when they arrived he
+ordered their arrest. A merchant of Pskof heard of it and, hurrying
+home, told the people. Immediately the bell was rung to convoke the
+vetché, and the masses called for war with Moscow. More prudent
+counsels prevailed when messengers arrived from the prisoners,
+imploring their friends not to try a useless resistance and to avoid
+the shedding of blood. A leading citizen was sent to Vassili to
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page107" name="page107"></a>(p. 107)</span> offer him submission; he was dismissed with the answer that
+one of the <i>diaks</i> or secretaries would come to Pskof to let the
+people know the terms. When that officer arrived, he was admitted in
+the vetché, where he informed his hearers that Vassili imposed two
+conditions, namely, that Pskof and the towns subject to it must
+receive his delegates, and that the vetché must be abolished and the
+great bell, used to convoke it, must be taken down. Twenty-four hours
+were asked to deliberate. Before the time expired, the vetché met for
+the last time, when the first magistrate addressed the delegate. "It
+is written in our chronicles," he said, "that our ancestors took oaths
+to the grand duke. The people of Pskof swore never to rebel against
+our lord who is at Moscow, nor to ally themselves with Lithuania, with
+Poland, nor with the Germans, otherwise the wrath of God would be upon
+them, bringing with it famine, fires, floods, and the invasion of the
+infidels. If the grand duke, on his part, did not observe his vow, he
+dared the same consequences. Now our town and our bell are in the
+power of God and the duke. As for us, we have kept our oath." The
+great bell was taken to Novgorod, and Vassili visited "his patrimony."
+Three hundred wealthy families were transported to other cities and
+replaced by as many families from Moscow. When he departed from Pskof,
+he left a garrison of 5,000 guards and 500 artillerymen. That was the
+end of the last republic in Russia. (1510.)</p>
+
+<p>In 1521, it was the turn of Riazan whose duke was accused of having
+entered into an alliance with the Khan of the Crimea. He was summoned
+to Moscow, where he was arrested, but he managed to escape. His
+dukedom, however, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page108" name="page108"></a>(p. 108)</span> was annexed to Moscow. Two years later, in
+1523, the Duke of Novgorod-Severski was put in prison for underhand
+dealing with Poland, and that dukedom was added to Vassili's
+territories. This rounded up Vassili's possessions in Central Russia.</p>
+
+<p>The grand duke continued his father's policy toward Lithuania. When
+Alexander died, he tried to become Grand Duke of Wilna, but the King
+of Poland was too quick for him. War broke out, but neither gained any
+important advantage, and in 1509 a <i>perpetual peace</i> was concluded
+wherein Vassili renounced all claims upon Kief and Smolensk. The
+"perpetual peace" lasted three years. Vassili then went to the other
+extreme, by declaring that "as long as his horse was in marching
+condition and his sword cut sharp, there should be neither peace nor
+truce with Lithuania." In 1514, the Russian army besieged and took
+Smolensk, but in the same year they were badly defeated in the battle
+of Orcha.</p>
+
+<p>The two grand dukes tried to involve as many allies as they could. The
+Khan of the Crimea, the useful friend of Vassili's father, had become
+the son's enemy; Vassili offset him by an alliance with the Khan of
+Astrakhan. When Sigismund tried to secure the help of Sweden, Vassili
+sought that of Denmark; and when his enemy set the Dnieper Cossacks at
+him, the grand duke induced the Teutonic Order to invade Poland. After
+Sigismund was defeated at Smolensk, the Emperor of Germany and the
+Pope offered to mediate; the latter advised Vassili to let Lithuania
+alone, and to turn his attention toward Constantinople. Negotiations
+commenced in 1520, but it was six years later before a truce was
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page109" name="page109"></a>(p. 109)</span> concluded. On this occasion Vassili made a speech in which he
+praised Emperor Charles V, and Pope Clement VII,&mdash;but Lithuania lost
+Smolensk. It was during this war that the partition of Poland was
+first mentioned.</p>
+
+<p>Vassili did not neglect the east, even while engaged in the west.
+Kazan had expelled the nephew of the Khan of the Crimea whom Ivan III
+had appointed, and elected a Khan hostile to Russia. Two expeditions
+were sent against the city but nothing was effected. When this khan
+died, Vassili succeeded in installing a friendly prince, but he was
+overthrown and a relative of the Khan of the Crimea took his place. He
+prepared a great invasion of Russia in 1521, and did gain a decided
+victory on the Oka, after which he ravaged the territory of the grand
+duke. Vassili was compelled to humble himself before the khan, in
+order to save Moscow; he made him presents and in the treaty signed by
+him, called himself the khan's tributary. When the khan withdrew, he
+was attacked in Riazan and the treaty was taken away from him. The
+invasion was, however, a calamity for the grand dukedom, which was
+devastated by fire, and a host of women and children were carried off,
+to be sold as slaves at Astrakhan and Kaffa.</p>
+
+<p>The following year Vassili collected a large army on the Oka and
+challenged the Khan of the Crimea to come and give battle. The offer
+was declined with the remark that he knew the way into Russia, and
+that he was not in the habit of consulting his enemies as to when and
+where he was to fight.</p>
+
+<p>Hoping to profit by the quarrels among the Tartars, Vassili sent an
+expedition to Kazan in 1523, and again in 1524, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page110" name="page110"></a>(p. 110)</span> but both
+were unsuccessful. Kazan owed its wealth to a fair, which attracted a
+host of merchants. Vassili thought that he would destroy his enemy's
+prosperity by establishing a rival fair. Accordingly one was opened at
+Makarief, and this time the grand duke's expectations were realized.
+This was the origin of the world-famous fair at Nishni Novgorod,
+whither it was transferred afterwards.</p>
+
+<p>Vassili made a long stride forward in the direction of autocracy. He
+consulted neither boyard nor priest. He deposed the Metropolitan and
+banished him to a monastery. Prince Kholmski, who was married to one
+of Vassili's sisters, was thrown into prison for failing to show
+abject respect. When one of the boyards complained that "The grand
+duke decided all the questions, shut up with two others in the
+bedchamber," the noble was promptly arrested, condemned to death, and
+executed. He interrupted the objection of a high noble with, "Be
+silent, lout!" His court displayed great splendor, but it was
+semi-Asiatic. The throne was guarded by young nobles called <i>ryndis</i>,
+dressed in long caftans of white satin, high caps of white fur, and
+carrying silver hatchets.</p>
+
+<p>Like his father, he tried to attract artists and learned men, and
+exchanged embassies with most of the European Courts. He extended the
+frontiers of his empire, but ruthlessly suppressed free thought. It
+has been claimed that the Slav is fit only for an absolute government.
+The history of Russia contradicts the statement. The idea of autocracy
+was Asiatic and was imported with the Tartar yoke.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XIII&mdash;IVAN IV, THE TERRIBLE. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page111" name="page111"></a>(p. 111)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>When Vassili died in 1533, he left two infant sons, Ivan and George,
+the elder three years old. His widow, Helena Glinski, assumed the
+regency. She was a woman remarkable for spirit and beauty, and showed
+her courage in ruthlessly suppressing every attempt of high nobles to
+contest her authority. She sent her husband's brother George to
+prison, and let him die there. One of her own uncles, who had been in
+her confidence, showed too much ambition and suffered the same fate.
+Andrew, another brother of Vassili, tried to make his escape; he was
+promptly brought back and placed in confinement. This caused an
+unimportant war with Poland, ending in a truce in 1537. The Tartars of
+Kazan and the Crimea were frequently defeated. But Helena was
+cordially hated by the great nobles at Moscow; she was poisoned, and
+died in 1538.</p>
+
+<p>Ivan, the oldest son and heir, was then eight years old. It must be
+placed to the credit of his mother that he had learned to read, for
+the children were sadly neglected after her death, and it was the
+boy's principal solace and occupation. In later years Ivan wrote of
+this time, "We and our brother Iouri (George) were treated like
+strangers, like the children of beggars. We were ill-clothed, cold
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page112" name="page112"></a>(p. 112)</span> and hungry." What impressed the child especially, was that
+when foreign envoys arrived he was placed upon the throne and the same
+nobles who showed him such contemptuous indifference, were respectful
+and even servile on such occasions. He noticed, too, that when these
+proud nobles needed anything, it was necessary that the papers should
+be signed by him. All this set the child thinking, and being a manly,
+bright boy, he came to the conclusion that, after all, he was the real
+master.</p>
+
+<p>After many quarrels among themselves, Andrew Chouïski, the head of a
+noble family, had become all-powerful; all important offices were
+occupied by his favorites and friends. Ivan noticed it all, but said
+nothing. He was thirteen years old when, after the Christmas
+celebration of 1543, he suddenly summoned the boyards before him, and
+in a threatening tone sternly accused them of their misdeeds. "There
+are among you many guilty ones," he said, "but this time I am
+satisfied with making one example." He ordered the guards to seize
+Andrew Chouïski, and had him then and there torn to pieces by dogs.
+After this terrible punishment, he ordered the arrest of the most
+disobedient nobles, who were transported to distant places.</p>
+
+<a id="img009" name="img009"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/img009.jpg" width="500" height="658" alt="Ivan IV" title="Ivan IV">
+</div>
+<p class="figcenter">Ivan IV</p>
+
+<p>The thirteen-year-old boy then assumed the government, relying chiefly
+upon his mother's relations, the Glinskis. In 1547, at the age of
+seventeen, he directed the Metropolitan to crown him, not as Grand
+Duke but as Czar. In a Bible printed in the Slavonic language, he had
+read of the <i>Czar</i> Nebuchadnezzar, the <i>Czar</i> Pharaoh, David, <i>Czar</i>
+of Israel, etc. He knew, besides, that the former masters <span class="pagenum"><a id="page114" name="page114"></a>(p. 114)</span>
+of the grand dukes, the khans, had been addressed by that title.
+Perhaps it was because he wished it to be known that he considered
+himself the equal of any Tartar ruler; perhaps because he desired to
+have a title superior to that of the nobles who descended from former
+grand dukes, and who inherited the rank without the power; at any rate
+Ivan IV was crowned as the first Czar.</p>
+
+<p>Young as he was, and since his thirteenth year beyond control, Ivan's
+life had been the reverse of good. But when, soon after the
+coronation, he married Anastasia Romanof, he made an earnest effort to
+reform. The relatives of his mother and of his wife, the Glinskis and
+the Romanofs, enjoyed his favor at this time.</p>
+
+<p>There was much suppressed dissatisfaction among the nobles, and many
+plots were hatched against him. In the year of his coronation, a fire
+swept wooden Moscow, and about 1,700 people perished in the flames.
+Ivan ordered an investigation, and withdrew to Vorobief. Crowds
+gathered in the thoroughfares, when mysterious persons appeared among
+them declaring that the Glinskis had set the city on fire. Soon after
+shouts were heard, "It is the Princess Anne Glinski who, with her two
+sons, has bewitched the city; she has taken human hearts, plunged them
+in water, and with this water has sprinkled the houses. This is the
+cause of the destruction of Moscow!" A mob collected and made for the
+palace of the Glinskis and one of them, George, was stabbed. They went
+on to Vorobief, where they demanded the life of Ivan's uncle. The
+czar's own life was in danger and the mob had to be dispersed by
+force.</p>
+
+<p>Ivan <span class="pagenum"><a id="page115" name="page115"></a>(p. 115)</span> did not forget this, and terrible was his vengeance upon
+the boyards. At this time he gave his confidence to two men, one a
+priest named Silvester, who had the reputation of being a very honest
+man; the other, a member of the smaller nobility, named Adachef who,
+in 1551, as Minister of the Interior, gave to Russian cities the first
+municipal liberties. Ivan showed an unusual interest in the people; it
+was under his orders that a new code of laws (Soudebnik) was prepared,
+and many reforms were made in the Church.</p>
+
+<p>This rather increased than diminished the hostility of the nobles.
+Ivan's favorites, Silvester and Adachef had grown ambitious and the
+former especially was overbearing. He openly opposed the czar, and
+tried to sow discord between him and his wife. When Ivan's favorite
+son died, Silvester told him that it was a punishment from heaven for
+his disobedience. The two men tried to procure the dismissal of the
+Glinskis and Romanofs, and for that purpose made friends with the
+boyards whom Ivan suspected. In 1553, the czar fell dangerously ill;
+he called in the boyards and ordered them to swear loyalty to his
+infant son Dmitri. They refused. He was informed that the nobles were
+conspiring with his cousin Vladimir, whose mother was distributing
+money in the army. He was in terror for the lives of his wife and son.
+Once he said to the boyards who had remained faithful, "Do not, I pray
+you, forget that you have sworn an oath to my son and to me; do not
+let him fall into the hands of the boyards; fly with him to some
+foreign country, whithersoever God may guide you." Ivan recovered but
+he never could forget the anguish of those days.</p>
+
+<p>Ivan's <span class="pagenum"><a id="page116" name="page116"></a>(p. 116)</span> character at this time was far from bad. He was only
+twenty years old, and on several occasions showed that he was
+compassionate instead of cruel. It was only natural that his nature
+should be perverted, surrounded as he was by men of whom he was
+suspicious. Still, such a change could only be gradual. The immediate
+consequence of the conduct of his nobles, was that it drew him closer
+to the people. This was shown in 1506, when he convoked the three
+orders, nobles, priests, and people, to discuss public affairs.</p>
+
+<p>His first act, after his recovery, was to banish his former favorites.
+Silvester was ordered to the monastery of St. Cyril, and Adachef was
+sent to Livonia. Soon afterwards the Czarina Anastasia died; there was
+a strong suspicion that she had been poisoned. To add to his
+bitterness, Prince Andrew Kourbski, a descendant of Rurik and a great
+friend of Silvester and Adachef, permitted 15,000 Russians to be
+defeated by the Poles with whom Ivan was at war. Kourbski deserted to
+the King of Poland.</p>
+
+<p>It appears that Ivan at this time feared for his life, for he withdrew
+to a neighboring castle with his friends, servants, and treasures.
+From there he wrote his abdication in two letters, one addressed to
+the Metropolitan, the other to the people of Moscow. This action
+struck terror among the nobles and the people. The former dreaded that
+the people might rise and avenge the czar, and the people were afraid
+that the nobles would once again usurp the government. The nobles and
+priests consulted and decided to beg Ivan's pardon and to submit to
+any punishment he might impose. Ivan consented to <span class="pagenum"><a id="page117" name="page117"></a>(p. 117)</span> return to
+Moscow but on his own terms. This was accepted. After his arrival in
+the capital he established a special guard of one thousand men who had
+a dog's head and a broom hanging from their saddles, to show that they
+were ready to bite and ready to sweep the czar's enemies from off
+Russian soil.</p>
+
+<p>It was then that Ivan began to earn the surname of The Terrible, which
+has clung to him ever afterwards. We have his own record in a letter
+to the Monastery of St. Cyril, in which he asks the prayers of the
+Church for the victims of his vengeance. He appears to have kept a
+careful account, as we read, "Kazarine Doubrofsky and his two sons,
+with ten men who came to their assistance;" "Twenty men of the village
+of Kolmenskoe;" "Eighty of Matveiché." It amazes us to read,
+"Remember, Lord, the souls of thy servants, to the number of 1,505
+persons, Novgorodians." The boyards lived in a state of terror; few
+among them knew how long they would keep their heads on their
+shoulders. Neither rank nor title was a safeguard. The Archbishop of
+Moscow was dismissed, and probably murdered. Alexander, George's
+widow, and Ivan's sister-in-law, went to the scaffold. Prince Vladimir
+and his mother, Ivan's uncle and grand-aunt, were also executed. It
+was on this occasion that the "Novgorodians, to the number of 1,505
+persons" were put to death, because Ivan suspected them of a plot to
+open the gates to the King of Poland. In 1571, there was another
+wholesale execution, in which several of Ivan's latest favorites were
+victims.</p>
+
+<p>The burden of his wrath fell upon the boyards. It may have been for
+the purpose of humiliating them and the Churchmen <span class="pagenum"><a id="page118" name="page118"></a>(p. 118)</span> that he
+assembled delegates of those two classes to confer with
+representatives of the merchants of Moscow and Smolensk, about the war
+with Poland. Ivan addressed the assembly in person, and it was decided
+that the war should continue.</p>
+
+<p>It was under his reign that British traders accidentally discovered
+the White Sea and the mouth of the Dwina. They came overland to Moscow
+where they were well received and secured several privileges. Ivan was
+anxious to conclude an offensive-defensive alliance with Elizabeth of
+England, and proposed an agreement to furnish each other with an
+asylum if either of them should be compelled to fly from the country
+through being defeated by an enemy or the rebellion of their subjects.
+Elizabeth did not fancy such an alliance, and declined the offer of an
+asylum, "finding," as she declared, "by the grace of God no dangers of
+the sort in her dominions." Ivan never ceased recurring to, and
+pleading for, such an agreement, thus showing his ever present
+suspicions.</p>
+
+<p>After commercial intercourse was established with England, and British
+traders settled in Moscow, Ivan continued to show them his favor. He
+was himself the greatest merchant of Russia. The furs which he
+received from Siberia were sold to the foreign merchants at the fairs.
+His agents went into the provinces where they compelled the people to
+sell him furs, wax, honey, etc., at such prices as he chose to pay,
+and the foreign merchants had to buy them from him at a high price. He
+also bought the imported goods and sold them to Russian merchants.
+They were not permitted to buy from <span class="pagenum"><a id="page119" name="page119"></a>(p. 119)</span> anybody else, until the
+goods of the czar were sold.</p>
+
+<p>At the beginning of his reign, in 1551, Ivan was preparing an
+expedition to Kazan, and in June of the following year he descended
+the Volga and laid siege to that city. It was captured after a brave
+defense, when a number of the people were massacred and the rest sold
+as slaves. This conquest was followed by that of Astrakhan in 1554;
+the Volga from its source to its mouth was thereafter a Russian river.
+The Cossacks of the Don also submitted to him.</p>
+
+<p>The European countries bordering on Russia dreaded that country's
+growing power. Ivan, after his coronation, sent to western Europe to
+engage a number of engineers and mechanics; these men were stopped on
+the road, and none of them ever reached Moscow. Sigismund of Poland
+even threatened to kill the British merchants on the Baltic,
+"because," he said, "if the Muscovite, who is not only our present
+adversary, but the eternal enemy of all free countries, should provide
+himself with guns, bullets, and munitions; and, above all, with
+mechanics who continue to make arms, hitherto unknown in this barbaric
+country, he would be a menace to Europe." Ivan, on the other hand, was
+equally anxious that the Russians should possess all the advantages of
+Europe's superior civilization. This, added to the inherited hostility
+between the two countries, caused many wars.</p>
+
+<p>While Ivan was pursuing his conquests in the south, he was attacked by
+Gustavus Wasa, Sweden's famous king, who entertained the same fears as
+the King of Poland. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page120" name="page120"></a>(p. 120)</span> The war ended by a commercial treaty
+whereby Swedish merchants might trade with India and China by way of
+Russia, and those of Russia with Holland, England, and France by way
+of Sweden. This war had scarcely ceased before envoys of the Livonian
+Order arrived to request a renewal of the truce. Ivan demanded tribute
+for Iourief which he claimed as his "patrimony." This was refused, and
+war was declared. It was owing to Ivan that this brotherhood was
+dissolved and its territory divided. In 1566, a truce was proposed by
+Poland.</p>
+
+<p>It was on this occasion that he called the assembly referred to on
+page <a href="#page116">116</a>. The war continued. Ivan was attacked also by Sultan Selim II
+of Turkey, in 1569, and the Khan of the Crimea marched straight upon
+Moscow, set fire to the suburbs, and destroyed the capital except the
+Kremlin. He carried off a hundred thousand prisoners. (1571.) As he
+withdrew, he wrote to Ivan: "I burn, I ravage everything on account of
+Kazan and Astrakhan. I came to you and burned Moscow. I wished to have
+your crown and your head, but you did not show yourself; you declined
+a battle and you dare call yourself a Czar of Moscow! Will you live at
+peace with me? Yield me up Kazan and Astrakhan. If you have only money
+to offer me, it will be useless were it the riches of the world. What
+I want is Kazan and Astrakhan! As to the roads to your empire, I have
+seen them&mdash;I know them." The khan made another invasion the next year,
+1572, but was defeated.</p>
+
+<p>In the same year Sigismund Augustus II of Poland died. There was a
+party at Warsaw that proposed to elect <span class="pagenum"><a id="page121" name="page121"></a>(p. 121)</span> Ivan's son, but the
+czar wanted Poland for himself. He failed in the attempt, and the Duke
+of Anjou, brother of the King of France, was chosen. He did not like
+the people and fled; his place was filled by Stephen Batory, Governor
+of Transsylvania, a young, capable, and energetic noble. Batory took
+in his service a number of trained German and Hungarian soldiers, and
+took Polotsk after a brave defense. He also captured several other
+towns, but was repulsed at Pskof.</p>
+
+<p>Ivan sought the mediation of Pope Gregory XIII, and a truce was
+concluded in 1582; Ivan ceded Polotsk and all Livonia.</p>
+
+<p>Ivan, in his manhood, was a man of violent temper. He was never seen
+without an iron-tipped staff, which he used freely and recklessly upon
+the people around him. Nobody, whatever his rank, was safe from
+corporal punishment. He killed his eldest son Ivan with a blow, and
+suffered from remorse ever afterward. He left a lasting impression
+upon Russia by his reforms. He made a law whereby neither church nor
+convents could acquire new lands. He was wonderfully well educated,
+considering the neglect of his early youth, and tolerant of religious
+opinions. A Presbyterian and a Lutheran church were built at Moscow
+with his consent, but in deference to the opposition of the people,
+they were removed to the suburbs. He was also the founder of the
+<i>streltsi</i> or national guard.</p>
+
+<p>Ivan died in 1584, after a reign of forty-one years.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XIV&mdash;RUSSIA UNDER IVAN THE TERRIBLE. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page122" name="page122"></a>(p. 122)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>The reign of Ivan the Terrible is remarkable, first, because it is the
+beginning of Russia as we know it in our time; and also because it
+occurred at a time when Great Britain was exploring the Atlantic, and
+preparing the way for the wonderful expansion of the English-speaking
+race, which culminated in the great North American Republic. It was
+under this reign, in 1558, that Russia's invasion of Asia began, and
+with it a movement eastward, which has not yet ceased.</p>
+
+<p>It is interesting, therefore, to study the condition of the Russian
+people at this important period. Although, as we have seen, the Tartar
+yoke did not influence the people directly, because there was no
+intercourse between victor and vanquished, the indirect influence was
+great, owing to the adoption of Tartar habits or customs by the dukes
+and nobles, during their visits to the khan. During this time
+intercourse with Europe ceased; hence, in the 16th and 17th centuries,
+Russia was more Asiatic than European, although the Russians hated the
+victors. Who can say how much influence this has exerted upon Russia's
+conquests in Asia?</p>
+
+<p>Among the old Slavs, the family was the unit from which the State was
+built up, and this was confirmed under <span class="pagenum"><a id="page123" name="page123"></a>(p. 123)</span> the Tartar yoke.
+There is some similarity between the Empire of Russia and that of
+China, for there, too, the family is the unit. In both countries the
+Emperor is not only the master, he is also considered as the father
+and high priest of his people. Their persons and property are the
+emperor's, to do with as he pleases. But in Russia there was a
+nobility descended from the former dukes; in China there was none,
+except the descendant of Confucius. Yet in Russia these lords, many of
+whom traced their descent to Rurik, became in time the slaves of the
+czar. They prostrated themselves before him, as they had seen the
+courtiers of the khan do. When they presented a petition, they
+expressed it by the word <i>tchélobitié</i>, which means "beating of the
+forehead," showing that they performed what is known in China as the
+<i>kowtow</i>. In addressing the czar, they said, "Order me not to be
+chastised; order me to speak a word!" The Grand Dukes of Moscow
+considered their territory and the people on it, as their own private
+property. They had learned this from the khans. The palace, a mixture
+of oriental splendor and barbarism, showed the influence of the
+Tartars.</p>
+
+<p>The people of Russia were divided into classes, the lowest of which
+were the slaves or <i>kholop</i>, prisoners of war, men who had sold
+themselves, or who were born in slavery. Above them were the peasants,
+born on the estate of a noble, but still known as free men. Then came
+the peasants who farmed the land of an owner, but these were few. Much
+of the land was owned by the several mirs or villages, but in the
+course of time they were assigned to gentlemen, who were able to serve
+in the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page124" name="page124"></a>(p. 124)</span> army without pay, being supported by the revenues
+derived from these villages. Gradually these gentlemen looked upon the
+land of the mir as their own property, but the peasants never did lose
+the conviction that the mir was the real proprietor. In Ivan's time
+and later, the mir and not the individual, was held responsible for
+the tax to the czar, for the free labor furnished to the lord, and for
+his dues. The mir, therefore, was absolute master over every
+inhabitant of the village, and this power was vested in the <i>starost</i>.
+The peasant gradually descended into a beast of burden, who was not
+even a human being, but merely a productive force for the benefit of
+the State and of the lord.</p>
+
+<p>A Russian town consisted, first of the <i>kremlin</i>, a fortress of wood
+which, when required, was defended by "men of the service"; then came
+the suburbs, built around the kremlin, and inhabited by the people.
+They were governed by a <i>voïevod</i> or governor, appointed by the czar,
+or by a starost or mayor, elected by the nobles, priests, and
+privileged citizens. The principal duty of the citizens was to pay the
+taxes, and therefore they were forbidden to leave the city. Under the
+Czar Alexis, the penalty for such offense was death.</p>
+
+<p>The merchants did not form a separate class. They are known in Russian
+as <i>gosti</i> or guests, thus showing that, notwithstanding the old and
+honorable record of Novgorod and Kief, the Tartar yoke and subsequent
+arbitrary rule of the grand dukes had ruined trade or left it in the
+hands of aliens. Ivan the Terrible called them the moujiks of
+commerce. Fletcher, an Englishman who spent many years in Moscow under
+Ivan IV, gives the following <span class="pagenum"><a id="page125" name="page125"></a>(p. 125)</span> curious pen picture: "Often you
+will see them trembling with fear, lest a boyard should know what they
+have to sell. I have seen them at times, when they had spread out
+their wares so that you might make a better choice, look all around
+them,&mdash;as if they feared an enemy would surprise them and lay hands on
+them. If I asked them the cause, they would say to me, 'I was afraid
+that there might be a noble or one of the sons of boyards here: they
+would take away my merchandise by force.'"</p>
+
+<p>The Russian women were kept secluded in women's quarters as they are
+in China, but they remained a member of their own family. A wife's
+duty was "to obey her husband as the slave obeys his master," and she
+was taught to think of herself as her master's property. He had the
+right to punish her as he did his children or his slaves. The priest
+Silvester advises the husband not to use sticks that are too thick or
+tipped with iron, nor to whip her before his men, but to correct her
+moderately and in private. No Russian woman dared object to being
+beaten. A Russian proverb says: "I love you like my soul, and I dust
+you like my jacket."</p>
+
+<p>The men wore oriental tunics or robes, and a long beard; the women
+painted their faces. Ivan the Terrible said that to shave the beard
+was "a sin that the blood of all the martyrs could not cleanse. Was it
+not to defile the image of man created by God?"</p>
+
+<p>There was a general belief in magic and witchcraft; sorcerers were
+burned alive in a cage. Ivan, although in advance of his age, was not
+free from superstition. The art of medicine was, of course, still in
+its infancy, and those <span class="pagenum"><a id="page126" name="page126"></a>(p. 126)</span> who practiced it were in constant
+danger of their lives, because if they did not cure a patient, they
+might suffer for it.</p>
+
+<p>Both the nobles and the people were addicted to the vice of
+drunkenness. No one paid any attention when a person, rich or poor,
+young or old, fell down in the street from the effects of drink. This
+is what the priests said of this vice: "My brethren, what is worse
+than drunkenness? You lose memory and reason like a madman who does
+not know what he is doing. The drunkard is senseless; he lies like a
+corpse. If you speak to him he does not answer. Think of his poor soul
+which grows foul in its vile body which is its prison.... To drink is
+lawful and is to the glory of God, who has given us wine to make us
+rejoice."</p>
+
+<p>The Metropolitan of Moscow, until a Patriarch was appointed, was
+supposed to be the head of the Church, but the czar held the real
+power. There were two classes of priests: The Black Clergy lived as
+monks in monasteries, some of which were exceedingly wealthy; they
+were forbidden to marry, and the bishops were appointed from among
+them. The White Clergy lived among the people and were compelled to
+marry. Most of them were grossly ignorant. The same Englishman quoted
+before, Mr. Fletcher, says of these priests: "As for exhorting or
+instructing their flock, they have neither the habit of it nor the
+talent for it, for all the clergy are as profoundly ignorant of the
+Word of God as of all other learning."</p>
+
+<p>The revenues of the Empire consisted of a tax on every sixty measures
+of corn; of a house-tax, or tax on every fire; <span class="pagenum"><a id="page127" name="page127"></a>(p. 127)</span> the
+customhouse dues, and what remained of the municipal taxes after
+paying expenses; of a tax on public baths; the farming out of lands
+belonging to the crown; the fines and confiscations in the "Court of
+the Brigands;" and finally of the tribute paid by thirty-six towns and
+their landed possessions "belonging to the Crown."</p>
+
+<p>The Courts of Justice belonged to the Middle Ages; tortures were
+applied similar to those employed by the Spanish Inquisition. A wife
+who murdered her husband "was buried alive up to her neck." Heretics
+were burned at the stake; sorcerers were burned in an iron cage, and
+coiners had liquid metal poured down their throats. A noble who killed
+a moujik was fined or sometimes whipped; but he might kill as many
+slaves as he pleased, because they were his property.</p>
+
+<p>The Russian infantry, so famous under the early Norsemen, had given
+way to cavalry, in imitation of the Tartars. The Imperial Guard was
+composed of 8,000 young nobles. The "men-at-arms" were mounted, but
+received no pay beyond the revenue of their lands, which they held in
+return for their military service. The army numbered about 80,000,
+and, with a levy among the peasants, could be brought up to 300,000.
+There was, besides, the irregular cavalry of the Don Cossacks, and of
+the Tartars. Such infantry as there was, consisted of peasants from
+the crown lands, churches, and convents; the national guard, and
+foreign soldiers or officers.</p>
+
+
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page128" name="page128"></a>(p. 128)</span>
+<a id="img010" name="img010"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/img010.jpg" width="400" height="525" alt="Feodor" title="Feodor">
+</div>
+<p class="figcenter">Feodor</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XV&mdash;FEODOR, THE LAST OF RURIK'S DESCENDANTS. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page129" name="page129"></a>(p. 129)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>Ivan the Terrible left two sons, Feodor, the son of Anastasia Romanof,
+and Dmitri, a child, the son of his seventh wife. Feodor was neither a
+strong-minded nor a very able man. He was married to Irene Godounof,
+and, following the usual custom, his wife's relations held the
+principal offices of the government. Gradually the czar's authority
+passed into the hands of Prince Boris Godounof, Irene's brother, a
+very ambitious and unscrupulous man. Wizards had foretold that Boris
+would be czar, but that his reign would last only seven years, and he
+did all he could to aid his destiny.</p>
+
+<p>He first caused Feodor's half-brother, Dmitri, to be sent with his
+mother and her relations to Ouglitch, where they would be out of the
+way. He also caused the Metropolitan to be dismissed, and had a friend
+appointed in his place. He aroused the higher nobles against him, and
+then made an effort to make friends with the smaller nobility,&mdash;at the
+expense of the poor peasants. According to law, these people were
+free; that is, when the contract with a landowner expired, they could
+move where they pleased, and the large owners could offer better terms
+than those who held small estates. But without labor, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page130" name="page130"></a>(p. 130)</span> the
+land was worthless and Russia, at the time, was so sparsely populated,
+that every hand counted. The object of the government was not to open
+up new lands, so as to create prosperity, but to provide for its
+current wants by seeing that the taxes were paid, and that the army
+was kept up to its standard. How could the men-at-arms, that is the
+small nobility, defray their own expenses while serving, if their
+revenues failed from lack of labor? Boris Godounof, therefore, made a
+law forbidding peasants to go from one estate to another. They were
+tied to the ground, and this was the first step to make serfs of them.
+The peasants did object; they had been accustomed to change service on
+St. George's day, and that day remained for many years one of deep
+sorrow. There was no rebellion, but a great many fled, and joined the
+Cossacks. After some years the law was changed so that peasants were
+permitted to change from one <i>small</i> estate to another.</p>
+
+<p>Another change under Feodor's reign was the appointment of a Patriarch
+as the head of the Greek Church under the czar. He was placed above
+the several Metropolitans, and thus the Church secured more unity.</p>
+
+<p>Feodor had no heirs, and his health was bad. It was, therefore, to
+young Dmitri at Ouglitch that the great nobles looked for relief from
+Godounof's tyranny. In 1591, this man sent hired assassins to Ouglitch
+and the youngest son of Ivan was murdered. Some of the hirelings were
+arrested by the people, and put to death. There was not even a doubt
+as to the facts. But Godounof ordered an investigation by his own
+friends; they declared that the young heir had committed suicide in a
+fit <span class="pagenum"><a id="page131" name="page131"></a>(p. 131)</span> of insanity, and that the people of Ouglitch had put
+innocent men to death. The assassination of Dmitri's relatives, and
+the depopulation of Ouglitch made further inquiry impossible.</p>
+
+<p>Stephen Batory who had worsted Ivan the Terrible, died in 1586, and
+the throne of Poland was once again vacant. Godounof tried hard to
+have Feodor elected, but the Poles feared that the czar might attach
+their kingdom to Moscow like a sleeve to a coat. Besides, the Roman
+Catholic electors did not like the thought of having a king belonging
+to the Greek Church; last of all, money counted in these elections,
+and Godounof was a very saving man. The result was that the Prince of
+Sweden was elected, and that war with Sweden broke out.</p>
+
+<p>The Poles, fearing lest Sweden should grow too powerful, held aloof;
+as a consequence, Russia gained back the towns which had been lost
+under Ivan the Terrible. Godounof made an effort to bring about a war
+between Poland and Sweden, but he only succeeded in arousing the
+suspicion and dislike of both countries.</p>
+
+<p>Feodor died in 1598; with him the house of Rurik, the old Norse
+Viking, ceased to exist.</p>
+
+<p>By trickery and knavery, Boris Godounof was elected czar by the
+<i>douma</i> or council of nobles, a body presided over by his friend the
+Patriarch, and containing many of his partisans. The great nobles,
+many of whom traced their descent to Rurik, objected to a czar, whom
+they considered and called an upstart. But Boris displayed cruelty as
+well as severity. Feodor, the eldest of the noble family of the
+Romanofs, was forced to become a monk <span class="pagenum"><a id="page132" name="page132"></a>(p. 132)</span> and his wife a nun. He
+took the name of Philarete, and she that of Marfa.</p>
+
+<p>Godounof did reign seven years, according to the wizard's prediction,
+but it was a stormy time for Russia. A young adventurer named Gregory
+Otrépief, pretended that he was the murdered Dmitri, and secured a
+large following. The troops sent against him "had no hands to fight
+but only feet to fly." At Godounof's death, in 1605, he confided his
+son and heir to a favorite named Basmanof, who turned traitor, joined
+the false Dmitri, and caused Godounof's widow and son to be murdered.
+Otrépief, who lacked neither courage nor ability, was made czar, but
+he reigned little over a month, when he, too, was murdered by a band
+of nobles under the leadership of Chouïski. This man seized the throne
+in 1606. The people in the country, owing to its vast extent and the
+poor roads, heard of Otrépief's coronation, his death, and the
+succession of Chouïski almost at the same time, and anarchy followed.
+At the same time Russia was involved in a war with Poland, at the time
+when a second false Dmitri made his appearance. The Cossacks and a
+host of Polish adventurers joined him, and he laid siege to the
+immensely wealthy Troïtsa monastery, where the monks defended
+themselves for sixteen months, and he was forced to withdraw. Affairs
+came to such a pass that the people of Moscow "humbly requested the
+czar to abdicate, because he was not successful, and also because he
+was to blame for the shedding of Christian blood." Chouïski was forced
+to yield, and soon after entered a monastery as a monk.</p>
+
+<p>Two candidates appeared for the vacant throne; the second <span class="pagenum"><a id="page133" name="page133"></a>(p. 133)</span>
+false Dmitri and Vladislas, the second son of Sigismund, King of
+Poland. The douma, not fancying the idea that an impostor should rule
+over them, invited the hetman of a Polish army to Moscow, to discuss
+the other candidate. This hetman promised in name of the prince to
+maintain the Greek Church and the privileges of the three orders,
+nobles, priests, and people, and that the law-making power should be
+shared by the czar and the douma; that no one should be executed
+without a trial, or deprived of his dignity without good reason; and
+finally, that Russians might go abroad to be educated if they so
+desired. Vladislas was then elected czar on condition that he should
+enter the Greek Church, and two envoys, one of them Philarete Romanof
+who had risen to the rank of Metropolitan, left for the Polish camp at
+Smolensk to complete the necessary arrangements. The douma invited the
+hetman to occupy the kremlin with his shoulders. He did so, taking the
+late Czar Chouïski and his two brothers as hostages.</p>
+
+<p>At Smolensk a difficulty occurred: the King of Poland wanted the
+Russian throne for himself. He also asked the envoys to cede Smolensk
+to Poland; they refused, and in turn asked that Vladislas should leave
+at once for Moscow. The king refused his consent, and began to use
+money. He found many Russian traitors willing to accept it, but the
+envoys remained firm.</p>
+
+<p>Soon after this, the second false Dmitri died, and the people began to
+show an interest in the dispute with Sigismund. Leading men at Moscow
+and Smolensk wrote to the provinces, begging their friends not to
+recognize the King of Poland as czar. Men-at-arms gathered, and
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page134" name="page134"></a>(p. 134)</span> when an army of them drew near Moscow, the Poles fortified
+the Kremlin. At this time a quarrel arose between the Polish troops
+and the people, and some 7,000 persons were killed. The Russians made
+a stand in the suburbs, when the Poles set fire to the city, and the
+greater part of Moscow was burned.</p>
+
+<p>Sigismund ordered the arrest of the two envoys who were taken to
+Marienburg in Prussia under escort. Smolensk fell soon after into his
+hands, and the king returned to Warsaw which he entered in triumph
+with the last Czar Chouïski a prisoner in his train. By this time the
+Russians were aroused; 100,000 men-at-arms gathered at Moscow and
+besieged the Poles in the Kremlin. Meanwhile Sweden had declared war,
+giving as reason the election of Vladislas, and had captured the ports
+on the Baltic. The monks of Troïtsa, whose heroic defense against the
+second false Dmitri had made the convent famous, sent letters to all
+the Russian cities bidding them fight for their country and religion.
+When this letter was read in public at Nishni Novgorod, a butcher,
+Kouzma Minine spoke up: "If we wish to save the Muscovite Empire," he
+said, "we must spare neither our lands nor our goods; let us sell our
+houses and put our wives and children out to service; let us seek a
+man who will fight for the national faith, and march under his
+banner." He set the example by giving one-third of all he possessed,
+and others followed. Those who refused to contribute were compelled to
+do so. Minine was elected treasurer; he accepted on condition that his
+orders should be obeyed without delay. Believing that the leadership
+should be given to a noble, Minine went <span class="pagenum"><a id="page135" name="page135"></a>(p. 135)</span> to Prince Pojarski
+who lived in the neighborhood. Pojarski accepted the command, and
+ordered three days of fasting and prayer. The streltsi were equipped
+as well as the men-at-arms; but the services of Cossacks and foreign
+mercenaries were refused.</p>
+
+<p>An army was collected and marched toward Moscow, with bishops and
+monks carrying holy eikons at the head; at Iaroslaf they were
+reënforced by other troops. They laid siege to the Kremlin; an attempt
+to relieve the fortress by the Poles was defeated. At last the
+garrison was forced to surrender. Among the Russian prisoners who
+regained their liberty was a fifteen-year-old boy, Michael Romanof,
+the son of Philarete and Marfa.</p>
+
+<p>Sigismund was on the way to reënforce the garrison, but hearing of its
+surrender, he fell back. An assembly was convoked to elect a czar. It
+was composed of delegates of the clergy, the nobles, the men-at-arms,
+the merchants, towns, and districts. There was much bickering, but all
+were agreed that no alien should be presented. When the name of
+Michael Romanof was called, it was received with enthusiasm, and he
+was declared elected. (1613.) The delegates remembered the relation
+between his family and Ivan the Terrible, and the services rendered by
+his father, the Metropolitan Philarete. There is a story that the King
+of Poland, when he heard of Michael's election, tried to kidnap him at
+Kostroma, and that a peasant guide led the party astray on a dark
+night. When the Poles discovered it, he was struck dead. This is the
+subject of a famous opera "A Life for the Czar."</p>
+
+<p>Russia's efforts to resume intercourse with Europe, which during the
+Tartar yoke had been suspended, were continued <span class="pagenum"><a id="page136" name="page136"></a>(p. 136)</span> under
+Godounof. He sent an ambassador to Queen Elizabeth with a letter, in
+which he says:&mdash;"I have learned that the Queen had furnished help to
+the Turks against the Emperor of Germany. We are astonished at it, as
+to act thus is not proper for Christian sovereigns; and you, our
+well-beloved sister, you ought not in the future to enter into
+relationships of friendship with Mussulman princes, nor to help them
+in any way, whether with men or money; but on the contrary should
+desire and insist that all the great Christian potentates should have
+a good understanding, union, and strong friendship, and unite against
+the Mussulmans, till the hand of the Christian rise and that of the
+Mussulman is abased." Judging from Elizabeth's character, it is likely
+that she shrugged her shoulders as she read this sermon. During the
+period of Russia's internal troubles, and owing to the vacancy of the
+throne, the relations with Europe were again suspended.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XVI&mdash;MICHAEL FEODOROVITCH OR MICHAEL, THE SON OF THEODORE, THE FIRST
+ROMANOF. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page137" name="page137"></a>(p. 137)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>Fifteen years of anarchy left Russia in disorder. The boyards had done
+as they pleased since there was no one to control them. The peasants
+who asked for nothing but a simple existence, had seen their crops
+trampled under foot, and their homes laid in ruins. It needed a strong
+hand to restore order; more than could be expected from a
+fifteen-year-old boy, who had neither the iron will of Ivan the
+Terrible, nor the advantage of having grown up with the conviction
+that he was the Master. Besides, although his election had been
+regular, the Don Cossacks and others refused to recognize him as the
+czar. On the other hand, the patriots stood by him. But the conditions
+were such that a foreigner in Moscow wrote at the time: "Oh that God
+would open the eyes of the czar as He opened those of Ivan, otherwise
+Muscovy is lost!"</p>
+
+<p>There was no money in the treasury, and the men-at-arms demanded pay
+because they received no revenues from their ruined estates. The czar
+and the clergy wrote to the Russian towns begging them for money and
+for troops to help the government, and a generous response was
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page138" name="page138"></a>(p. 138)</span> made. The people of the provinces, anxious to see law and
+order restored, rose in favor of the czar, and Astrakhan sent a rebel
+chief to prison. He was shortly afterwards tried and executed.</p>
+
+<p>While the people were thus aiding the government, no time was lost in
+dealing with the foreign enemy. In 1614, Michael sent envoys to
+Holland to request help in men and money. The Dutch gave a small sum,
+regretting that they could do no more as they had just ended a war
+that had lasted forty-one years (1568-1609); they promised that they
+would persuade Sweden to come to an understanding with Russia. Another
+embassy went to James I of England, who was told that the Poles had
+murdered British merchants and plundered their warehouses. This was a
+falsehood, because the envoys knew that the outrage had been committed
+by Cossacks and a Russian mob, but they hoped that the king would not
+know it. James did not, and advanced 20,000 rubles. After this British
+merchants demanded concessions and privileges in Russia, but as they
+asked too much, they received nothing. Sweden, urged by England and
+Holland, concluded with Russia the Peace of Stolbovo in 1617. Sweden
+received an indemnity of 20,000 rubles, and surrendered Novgorod and
+other towns.</p>
+
+<p>The war with Poland was then continued more vigorously, and in 1618 a
+truce of fourteen years and six months was arranged. It was understood
+that this was temporary, because the King of Poland still claimed the
+throne of Russia, and refused to recognize Michael. But the prisoners
+were released and Philarete, the czar's father, returned to Moscow,
+where his presence was soon felt <span class="pagenum"><a id="page140" name="page140"></a>(p. 140)</span> by the nobles. The most
+independent were arrested and sent into exile. So long as Philarete
+assisted his son, there was no disorder.</p>
+
+<a id="img011" name="img011"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/img011.jpg" width="400" height="502" alt="Michael Feodorovitch" title="Michael Feodorovitch">
+</div>
+<p class="figcenter">Michael Feodorovitch</p>
+
+<p>In 1618, the great struggle between Protestant and Roman Catholic
+Europe began and Sweden, which was to take such a glorious part in it,
+sought Russia's aid. Gustavus wrote to Michael telling him that if the
+Catholic league should prevail, the Greek Church would be in danger.
+"When your neighbor's house is on fire," he wrote, "you must bring
+water and try to extinguish it, to guarantee your own safety. May your
+Czarian Majesty help your neighbors to protect yourself." Sound as the
+advice was, Russia had enough to do at home. Sultan Osman of Turkey
+offered an alliance against Poland, when Michael convoked the Estates.
+The deputies beat their foreheads, and implored the czar "to hold
+himself firm for the holy churches of God, for his czarian honor, and
+for their own country against the enemy. The men-at-arms were ready to
+fight, and the merchants to give money." The war was postponed when
+news arrived that the Turks had been defeated.</p>
+
+<p>Sigismund of Poland died in 1632, and his son Vladislas was elected.
+The following year Philarete died, and the nobles, released from his
+stern supervision, resumed their former behavior. The war between the
+two neighbors recommenced, but did not last long. When a new truce was
+concluded Michael's title as czar was recognized by Vladislas.</p>
+
+<p>It was entirely the fault of the Polish nobles that Poland lost
+Lithuania or White Russia. The only excuse that can be offered, is the
+spirit of religious persecution which <span class="pagenum"><a id="page141" name="page141"></a>(p. 141)</span> was rampant all over
+Europe in the seventeenth century. It was the ceaseless effort of the
+Poles to force the Lithuanians from the Greek into the Roman Church
+that drove them into the arms of Russia; but it was not until after
+the death of Michael, in 1645, that the consequences of this
+short-sighted policy were to show.</p>
+
+<p>Michael was succeeded by his son, who ascended the throne as Alexis
+Michaelovitch. He was better educated than his father had been and
+resembled him in good nature. He had been taught by a tutor named
+Morozof, who during thirty years exerted a great influence over his
+pupil. When Alexis married into the Miloslavski family, its members
+secured the most influential positions, according to well-established
+custom. Morozof did not oppose them; instead he courted and married
+the czarina's sister, and thus became the czar's brother-in-law.</p>
+
+<p>The wars in which Russia was engaged and the necessity of maintaining
+a large and well-equipped army, together with the increasing expenses
+of the Court, and above all, the dishonest practices of the officials
+rendered the burden of taxation so unbearable, that several revolts
+broke out. In 1648, the people of Moscow rose and demanded the
+surrender of a judge and another officer, both of whom were
+notoriously corrupt; the two men were promptly murdered. Then the
+popular fury turned upon Morozof, who would have suffered the same
+fate, had not the czar helped him to escape. The government was
+helpless. In some places, such as Pskof, Novgorod, and elsewhere, the
+streltsi joined the people, and Russia was for some time at the mercy
+of an enemy.</p>
+
+<p>It <span class="pagenum"><a id="page142" name="page142"></a>(p. 142)</span> was fortunate for Russia that just at that time, Poland
+had serious trouble at home. A Cossack, owner of a large estate,
+educated and brave, was ill-treated and imprisoned by a Polish
+landowner; and his little son was publicly whipped. He went to Warsaw
+and laid his complaint before the king. Vladislas told him plainly
+that the nobles were beyond his control; then, pointing to his sword,
+he asked if the Cossack could not help himself. The Cossack took the
+hint, went home, and when the Polish landowners tried to arrest him,
+he fled to the Khan of the Crimea, interested him in his cause and
+returned at the head of a Mussulman army. Lithuania rose in rebellion
+against Poland; the governors and nobles, and especially the priests
+of the Catholic Church, were hunted down, and those of the Greek
+Church took revenge for recent injuries and insults.</p>
+
+<p>Vladislas died, and the Diet elected his brother John Casimir. He
+tried to reduce the very serious rebellion by promises, but there was
+too deep a hatred between the two churches. Meanwhile order had been
+restored in Russia, when the people of Lithuania wrote to the czar
+begging him to take them under his protection. Alexis convoked the
+Estates, told them that he had been insulted by Poland, and that the
+Poles were persecuting the members of the Greek Church. They declared
+in favor of war, and a boyard was sent to Kief to receive the oath of
+allegiance. The people were willing provided their liberties would be
+respected. This the czar promised. He declared that the privileges of
+the Assembly and of the towns would be maintained, that only natives
+would be employed in the administration and in taxation.</p>
+
+<p>Poland <span class="pagenum"><a id="page143" name="page143"></a>(p. 143)</span> was now sorely pressed. Charles X of Sweden invaded
+the kingdom and took two of its capitals. The Cossack and Lithuanians
+entered it from the south, and the Czar Alexis at the head of his own
+army attacked it on the east. He maintained strict discipline so that
+the Polish Governors said, "Moscow makes war in quite a new way, and
+conquers the people by the clemency and good-nature of the czar." The
+towns of White Russia opened their gates to his army, and Smolensk
+surrendered after a five weeks' siege. The Swedes captured Warsaw, the
+last capital of the misruled kingdom.</p>
+
+<p>It was the jealousy of its enemies that saved Poland this time. Alexis
+entered into a truce and attacked Sweden. This war was carried on from
+1656 until 1661, and ended by the peace of Cardis whereby neither
+country gained any advantage. The Poles, seeing the danger they had
+incurred, rallied, and once again war broke out with Russia. It was
+carried on with various success until both countries were exhausted.
+In 1661, a thirteen years' truce was concluded, whereby Russia
+restored Lithuania, but kept Little Russia on the left bank of the
+Dnieper, together with Kief and Smolensk.</p>
+
+<p>In 1668, a revolt was organized by the Metropolitan of Kief, who
+preferred the jurisdiction of the Patriarch of Constantinople to that
+of Moscow. As a result, Little Russia was subject to all the horrors
+of war, but the Russian power prevailed in the end. Then the Cossacks
+of the Don broke out, and until 1671 the territory between that river
+and the Volga suffered terribly.</p>
+
+<p>Alexis' reign was remarkable for the introduction of so-called
+"reforms" in the Church, which were confined wholly <span class="pagenum"><a id="page144" name="page144"></a>(p. 144)</span> to
+ceremonies and externals. The czar supported the "reformer" Nicon, and
+those who did not agree with him were called <i>religious madmen</i> and
+suffered persecution. The monasteries near Archangel rebelled and
+troops were sent against them; but it was eight months before the
+sturdy monks capitulated.</p>
+
+<p>Alexis continued his father's efforts to reëstablish intercourse with
+Western Europe. But the West was only recovering from the terrible
+Thirty Years' War, so that little interest was shown.</p>
+
+<p>Alexis had married twice. From the first marriage he had two sons
+Feodor and Ivan, and six daughters; by his second wife he had one son,
+Peter, and two daughters. When he died, in 1676, he was succeeded by
+his eldest son Feodor.</p>
+
+<p>Feodor Alexievitch, the third czar of the Romanof family, reigned only
+six years, from 1676 to 1682. It was under his reign that a truce for
+twenty years with Turkey, restored peace to White Russia.</p>
+
+<p>Hitherto Russia had suffered from the rivalry resulting from disputes
+caused by precedence of birth; generals had lost battles, because they
+refused to serve under men whom they looked upon as inferiors. At an
+assembly of the higher clergy, it was resolved to burn the Book of
+Rank, and the czar made a law that any one disputing about his rank,
+should lose it as well as his property.</p>
+
+<p>To protect the Greek Church from dividing into sects, an academy was
+founded at Moscow where the Slav, Latin, and Greek languages were
+taught.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XVII&mdash;EARLY YEARS OF PETER THE GREAT (PETER ALEXIEVITCH). <span class="pagenum"><a id="page145" name="page145"></a>(p. 145)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>Feodor died childless, and should have been succeeded by his little
+brother Ivan, but the child was of unsound mind. The other son of
+Alexis, Peter, was the child of his last wife, and nine years old at
+the time. The question about the succession was discussed in the
+Council, and decided in Peter's favor, and his mother Natalia became
+Regent. Among Peter's half sisters was one, Sophia, twenty-five years
+old, who did not propose to submit to this decision. She took part in
+Feodor's funeral, in defiance of the law which forbade women to appear
+in public, and after it schemed and plotted to form a party in her
+favor. A rumor was spread that the czarina's brother had seized the
+throne and that Ivan had been murdered. The people of Moscow rose, and
+the streltsi marched to the kremlin where the appearance of Natalia
+with the two children made the mob hesitate. Unfortunately Prince
+Dolgorouki addressed the men in violent language; they seized him on
+their pikes and killed him. They then stabbed the czarina's foster
+father, Matvéef, in her presence, and sacked the palace, murdering
+many of its inmates. One of Natalia's brothers was thrown out of a
+window and caught on the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page146" name="page146"></a>(p. 146)</span> points of the lances of the
+streltsi who were waiting below. Natalia's father and brother were
+taken from her; Cyril, the father, was sent to a monastery and her
+brother Ivan was tortured and cut to pieces, although the czarina went
+on her knees begging for his life. The streltsi acted under authority
+from Sophia when they committed these outrages. After this rioting had
+continued seven days, the streltsi sent their commandant Khovanski to
+the douma, to demand that there should be two czars, Ivan, with Peter
+as his assistant. The douma did not fancy the idea,&mdash;but there were
+the streltsi with their pikes, and they carried the day.</p>
+
+<p>From this time it was Sophia who was the real czar. She reigned in
+name of the two half-brothers, and showed herself in public, insisting
+upon being present on every occasion. The Russians as a rule are not
+fond of new fashions; they did not like this, and objected so strongly
+that Sophia was forced to give way. Thereafter the two young czars sat
+in public on the throne, but it was constructed in such a manner that
+Sophia could hear and see without being visible.</p>
+
+<p>She shocked every Russian by her manners until the streltsi began to
+speak of her as "the scandalous person." They hated her when she
+persecuted the <i>raskolnik</i> or Old Believers, that is, the men who
+objected to the reforms of Nicon. At last she thought that it was not
+safe for her to remain at Moscow; she fled to the strong convent at
+Troïtsa, taking with her the czarina and the two little tsars, and
+there summoned the men-at-arms whom she could trust. Khovanski, the
+commandant of the streltsi, was summoned before her; he was arrested
+on <span class="pagenum"><a id="page147" name="page147"></a>(p. 147)</span> the way, and put to death with his son. The streltsi were
+considering another revolt, when they were seized with a panic;
+instead of marching upon Troïtsa, they went there to beg her pardon.
+Sophia forgave them, but their leaders were executed.</p>
+
+<p>Sophia trusted the government to two favorites, Prince Galitsyne who
+was at the head of Foreign Affairs, and Chaklovity whom she made
+commandant of the streltsi. Galitsyne tried hard to form an alliance
+among the Christian powers against the Turks and Tartars. His scheme
+failed because Louis XIV of France kept the whole of Western Europe in
+turmoil by his constant wars with the House of Austria, and the
+Christian princes had to look after their own interests. He was more
+fortunate in Poland where John Sobieski was king. A treaty of
+"perpetual" peace was concluded between Russia and Poland at
+Androussovo, in 1686, and an alliance was entered into against the
+Turks.</p>
+
+<p>In 1687, an army of 100,000 Russians and 50,000 Cossacks marched
+against the Crimea. The Tartars had burned the steppes, and the
+Russians suffered such severe hardships that they were forced to
+retreat. The hetman of the Cossacks was accused of treachery, and
+deported to Siberia, when Mazeppa, who had been his secretary, was
+appointed hetman. In the spring of 1689, the Russians under Galitsyne
+and the Cossacks under Mazeppa started again for the Crimea, but they
+had no better success than before.</p>
+
+<p>Peter, who was born in 1673, was then sixteen years old, but being
+tall and strongly built, he looked much older. He was bright and
+anxious to learn, and at an early <span class="pagenum"><a id="page148" name="page148"></a>(p. 148)</span> age had shown that he
+possessed a will of his own. He had read much, but his tutor, a man
+named Zorof, had allowed him to have his own way, and when the boy
+grew up to be a man, he made that tutor "the arch-priest of fools."
+When the boy was tired, Zorof would allow him to put his work aside,
+and would read to him about the great deeds of his father Alexis, and
+of those of Ivan the Terrible, their campaigns, battles, and sieges;
+how they endured privations better than the common soldiers, and how
+they added other territory to Russia. He also learned Latin, German,
+and Dutch. He afterwards complained that his education was neglected,
+because he was allowed to do as he pleased. He chose his own
+companions, and as he did not like to be confined within the palace
+grounds, he roamed in the streets and often became acquainted with men
+whom he would not have met in the palace, Russians, Dutch, Swiss,
+English, and Germans. His usual attendants were Boris Galitsyne and
+other young nobles with whom he played at soldier. He pressed the
+palace servants into the ranks and had them drilled in European
+tactics. Peter took lessons in geometry and fortification; he
+constructed small forts which were besieged and defended by the young
+players. Sometimes the game became earnest; blows were given and
+received, when Peter took his share without a murmur, even when he was
+wounded as sometimes happened.</p>
+
+<p>At first Peter did not like the water; no Russian does; but he
+mastered his dislike. Once, when he saw a stranded English boat, he
+sent for a boatbuilder to make him a sailboat and to teach him how to
+manage it. He took <span class="pagenum"><a id="page149" name="page149"></a>(p. 149)</span> a great fancy to sailing, and often took
+his boat on the Yaousa, and afterwards on Lake Peréiaslaf, to the
+terror of his mother. Thus Peter grew up, healthy in body and strong
+of mind, until his ambitious half-sister Sophia began to think what
+would become of her when the boy should be czar. She had styled
+herself Autocrat of all the Russias and did not like the idea of
+surrendering the title. For some time she was appeased when her
+courtiers told her that the boy cared for nothing except to amuse
+himself.</p>
+
+<p>When he was sixteen years old, Peter asserted himself. Sophia had
+ordered a triumphal entry for Prince Galitsyne and the army of the
+Crimea, when Peter forbade her to leave the palace. She paid no
+attention to his orders, but headed the procession of the returned
+army. Peter saw that this meant war to the knife, and left for
+Préobajenskoé.</p>
+
+<p>As soon as she heard of this, Sophia determined to seize the throne.
+She intended to attack the palace, kill Peter's friends and arrest his
+mother, and after that to deal with the young czar as circumstances
+demanded. She sent for the commandant of the streltsi who agreed to
+sound the men. He told them that Sophia's life was in danger, and that
+she had fled to a convent. The latter part of the story was true, as
+she had in fact retreated to such a place, from which she sent letters
+to the streltsi to come to her rescue. The commandant failed to secure
+more than 500 men; the other streltsi told him that there should be an
+investigation.</p>
+
+<p>Two of the streltsi went to Peter and reported to him what was going
+on, whereupon he moved to the famous Troïtsa <span class="pagenum"><a id="page150" name="page150"></a>(p. 150)</span> monastery. The
+Patriarch, foreign officers serving in the army, his playmates, and
+even a regiment of streltsi came to him to offer their services. Peter
+issued orders for the arrest of Sophia's favorite, the commandant of
+the militia. She begged the Patriarch to interfere but met with a
+refusal. The commandant under torture confessed the plot, and was
+beheaded. Sophia's other friends were arrested; some were executed
+while others were sent to prison; she herself was confined in the
+convent where she had found a retreat. Peter was now the czar,
+although he conducted the government in his own name and in that of
+his weak-minded brother Ivan.</p>
+
+<p>If Sophia had shocked the Russians by leaving the seclusion of the
+women's apartments, Peter's acts were likely to astonish them still
+more and to give offense. Rowing in a boat, instead of sitting in it
+surrounded by his grandees; working like a carpenter, instead of
+merely giving his orders through a courtier, and fighting with
+foreigners and grooms, were acts so unlike to what a czar should do,
+that Peter made a host of enemies. Little did he care! No sooner was
+he free to do as he pleased, than he rushed off to Archangel, the only
+port Russia could call her own, and there he saw salt water for the
+first time. He mingled freely with captains of the foreign merchant
+vessels and went out in their boats. On one occasion, he was out in a
+storm and came near being drowned; but this did not prevent "Skipper
+Peter Alexievitch," from putting out to sea again. Once he piloted
+three Dutch vessels. The young czar gave orders to construct a
+dockyard and to have boats built.</p>
+
+<p>Peter <span class="pagenum"><a id="page151" name="page151"></a>(p. 151)</span> longed for ports on an open sea, a sea that would not
+freeze in winter. There were three which Russia might reasonably hope
+to own some day, the Baltic, the Black, and the Caspian Sea. The
+Baltic belonged to Sweden, and Peter feared difficulties in that
+direction; but the Black Sea belonged to the Turks, and Peter quite
+understood that a war with the infidels would be popular in Russia. He
+wished to visit Western Europe; to see for himself the wonders of
+which he had heard foreigners speak; but he made up his mind not to go
+until he could appear as a victorious general.</p>
+
+<p>Thus Peter made preparations for war with the Khan of the Crimea. He
+did not command his army; what he wanted, was to learn, and therefore
+he went as the gunner Peter Alexievitch. That did not prevent him from
+keeping a sharp eye on his generals. Chief-engineer Jansen received a
+sound whipping from him and deserted to the enemy. For this and other
+causes he was compelled to raise the siege of Azof and to fall back to
+Russia. His mother died in 1694. He returned to Russia in 1695, and
+notwithstanding his defeat, he ordered a triumphal entry into Moscow;
+but he felt very sore. The following year, 1696, his half-brother Ivan
+died, and Peter was the sole Autocrat of all the Russias.</p>
+
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page152" name="page152"></a>(p. 152)</span>
+<a id="img012" name="img012"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/img012.jpg" width="400" height="568" alt="Peter the Great" title="Peter the Great">
+</div>
+<p class="figcenter">Peter the Great</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XVIII&mdash;PETER THE GREAT AND HIS REIGN. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page153" name="page153"></a>(p. 153)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>Far from being discouraged by his defeat, Peter was more than ever
+resolved to have a port on the Black Sea. He introduced reforms in the
+army, and while doing this, he ordered a fleet of boats to be built on
+the Don, and set 26,000 men to work on them. He also sent to Holland
+and other parts of Europe for officers and gunners, and superintended
+everything. It was at this time that he wrote to Moscow that,
+"following the command God gave Adam, he was earning his bread by the
+sweat of his brow." When he was ready, the army and the boats went
+down the Don; Azof was blockaded by sea and by land, and forced to
+capitulate. When the news arrived at Moscow, there was general
+rejoicing, and even at Warsaw in Poland the people cheered for the
+czar. The army returned to Moscow under triumphal arches, the generals
+seated in magnificent sledges. A young officer, Peter Alexievitch,
+recently promoted to captain, was marching in the ranks.</p>
+
+<p>Peter wished to make of Azof a Russian town in the shortest time
+possible. He secured from the douma an order by which three thousand
+families were moved to that port, and streltsi were dispatched to
+garrison it. The czar wanted a naval force, and moved by his energy,
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page154" name="page154"></a>(p. 154)</span> the Patriarch, the prelates, and the monasteries offered to
+give one ship for every 5,000 serfs owned by them. This example was
+followed by nobles, officials, and merchants, and once more Peter sent
+to the west for competent men to help build them. At the same time
+fifty young nobles were dispatched to Venice to learn shipbuilding.</p>
+
+<p>When he was seventeen years old, Peter had married Eudoxia Lapoukine,
+whose relatives abhorred all that was new; Peter's wife shared their
+sentiments, so that his home life was far from happy. He had a son by
+her, named Alexis; after the fall of Azof, Peter secured a divorce, an
+act unheard of in Russia, where she remained czarina in the eyes of
+the people. Busy as he was, Peter left his son and heir in charge of
+his divorced wife, while he was making preparations for the long
+expected visit to the west of Europe.</p>
+
+<p>He determined that an embassy should be sent, and that it should be
+worthy of Russia. Accordingly he appointed the Swiss Lafort and two
+Russian generals "the great Ambassadors of the Czar." Among their
+retinue composed of two hundred and seventy persons, was a young man
+Peter Mikhaïlof, better known as Peter Alexievitch. When the embassy
+came to Riga, that young man was insulted by the governor. Peter said
+nothing, but made a note of it for future use. At Königsberg, "Mr.
+Peter Mikhaïlof" was appointed master of artillery by the Prussian
+Colonel Sternfeld. The progress of the embassy was too slow for Peter
+who had an object in view. He went ahead to Holland where he hired a
+room from a blacksmith at Zaandam, bought <span class="pagenum"><a id="page155" name="page155"></a>(p. 155)</span> a workman's suit,
+and went to work in a dockyard. He often visited Amsterdam where his
+good nature and passion to learn gained him the good-will of the
+people. Peter then crossed over to London where he spent three months.
+Competent men of every profession and trade were engaged by him
+everywhere. Returning to Holland, his ship was caught in a violent
+gale, which frightened even the sailors. Peter kept cool, and,
+smiling, asked them if they "had ever heard of a Czar of Russia who
+was drowned in the North Sea?"</p>
+
+<p>Peter did not forget Russia's political interests. He talked with
+William of Orange, the great opponent of Louis XIV, and with other
+influential men, but he did not visit the court of France. After
+satisfying his curiosity, he went to Vienna where he intended to study
+strategy; but his stay was cut short by bad news from home.</p>
+
+<p>Peter had met with a sullen, obstinate opposition in Russia. It was
+led by the priests who said, and perhaps believed, that Peter was the
+anti-Christ. It was a cause for complaint that Peter often wore
+clothes of a German fashion; was the Russian costume not good enough
+for him? Again, why did he not devote his time to war, as the other
+czars had done? He had made a bargain with British merchants to import
+tobacco into Russia; what did the Russians want with this
+"sacrilegious smell?" But the climax was that a <i>Czar of the Russias</i>
+should leave Holy Russia to go among heretics and heathens. Geography
+was not studied in the czar's empire, and all nations on earth were
+thought to belong to either of the two classes.</p>
+
+<p>The <span class="pagenum"><a id="page156" name="page156"></a>(p. 156)</span> trouble began among the streltsi who had been sent to
+Azof. These citizen soldiers looked upon their destination at the
+other end of the empire as an exile,&mdash;which it may have been. Two
+hundred deserted and made their way back to Moscow and their families;
+they were promptly hunted down. When they returned to their regiments,
+they brought with them a secret proclamation from Sophia. "You
+suffer," she declared, "but it will grow worse still. March on Moscow!
+What are you waiting for? There is no news of the czar!" There was a
+rumor that Peter was dead and that his son Alexis had been murdered by
+the boyards. Four regiments revolted and left the ranks. Generals
+Gordon and Schein went after them with the regular troops, and after
+overtaking the mutineers, tried to bring them to reason. In reply they
+stated their grievances and persisted in their determination not to
+return to duty. The government troops then fired and scattered the
+streltsi. A number of them were arrested, tortured, and executed.</p>
+
+<p>At this time Peter returned, furious at what had happened. He was
+determined to strike at the head of the opposition, the Russians who
+openly denounced innovations. He ordered that the face must be shaved.
+This was hitting every adult Russian in a tender spot, because the
+shaving of the face was considered in the light of a blasphemy. He
+began to enforce his orders at his court, sometimes acting as a barber
+himself, when he was none too gentle. A number of gibbets erected on
+the Red Square, reminded the bearded noble that the choice lay between
+losing the beard or the head. The Patriarch <span class="pagenum"><a id="page157" name="page157"></a>(p. 157)</span> appealed to
+Peter, a holy eikon of the Virgin in his hand. "Why did you bring out
+the holy eikon?" asked the czar. "Withdraw and restore it to its
+place. Know that I venerate God and His mother as much as you do, but
+know also that it is my duty to protect the people and to punish the
+rebels."</p>
+
+<p>The gibbets did not stand as an idle threat. The Austrian Minister
+Korb was a witness of the executions, which he describes thus: "Five
+rebel heads had been sent into the dust by blows from an ax wielded by
+the noblest hand in Russia." Thus Peter did not hesitate to be his own
+executioner. It was like him to do his own work, regardless of what
+the people might think. A thousand men were sent to a gory grave, by
+the highest officers of the court; the executions lasted a week. The
+funeral of the executed was forbidden. Bodies were seen dangling from
+the walls of the kremlin for five months, and for the same length of
+time, the corpses of some of the streltsi hung from the bars of
+Sophia's prison, clutching the secret proclamation. Peter's divorced
+wife had joined Sophia's party; the two ladies had their head shaved
+and were confined in convents. The streltsi were dissolved and
+replaced by regular troops.</p>
+
+<p>Peter then turned upon the Cossacks of the Don, who had shown greater
+independence than pleased him. Prince Dolgorouki to whom the task was
+confided of bringing them to order, wrote to the czar after he had
+destroyed the Cossack camp: "The chief rebels and traitors have been
+hung; of the others, one out of every ten; and all these dead
+malefactors have been laid on rafts, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page158" name="page158"></a>(p. 158)</span> and turned into the
+river, to strike terror into the hearts of the Don people and to cause
+them to repent."</p>
+
+<p>Mazeppa, as we have seen, was at this time hetman of the Cossacks of
+Little Russia. In his youth he had been a page of John Casimir, king
+of Poland; it was then that he had that terrible adventure which is
+connected indelibly with his name. After he was cut loose from the
+back of the unbroken horse that had carried him in the steppes, he
+entered among the Cossacks, and rose from the ranks by betraying every
+chief who helped him. Although it was Sophia who made him hetman, he
+was among the first to declare for Peter. His enemies, of whom he had
+many, accused him before the czar, but Peter admired him, and
+delivered his accusers up to him; they did not live long after Mazeppa
+had them in his power.</p>
+
+<p>It was Mazeppa's scheme to establish an independent kingdom, he had
+the support of the Cossacks who did not care to work but preferred to
+be supported by the people. The industrious classes longed to get rid
+of this burden, and looked toward the czar to set them free. The
+tribute which Little Russia paid to Moscow was quite heavy, and when
+it was rumored that Peter was going to war with Sweden, Mazeppa
+thought this was an opportunity to carry out his scheme. He entered
+into negotiations with Stanislas Lecszinski whom Swedish influence had
+placed upon the throne of Poland. Peter was informed of this in
+detail, but he did not credit it, beheaded one of his informants, and
+the others, were tortured and sent to Siberia.</p>
+
+<p>The war broke out, Charles XII, the romantic king of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page159" name="page159"></a>(p. 159)</span> Sweden
+arrived in the neighborhood of Little Russia, and Peter called on
+Mazeppa to join the Russian army with his Cossacks. He pretended to be
+dying, but when the two hostile armies were drawing close, he crossed
+the Desna with his most trusted Cossacks to join the Swedes. Peter's
+eyes were opened; he gave orders to his general Menzikoff to take and
+sack Mazeppa's capital. This was done and Mazeppa's friends, who had
+remained behind, were executed. Mazeppa himself reached the Swedish
+camp. He was compelled to seek safety in Turkey, where he died
+miserably at Bender. His territory was annexed to Russia, the Cossacks
+lost all their privileges, and 1,200 of them were set to work on the
+Ladoga canal.</p>
+
+<p>It was in 1700 that Peter, after concluding an alliance with Poland,
+determined to declare war against Sweden where young Charles XII had
+recently succeeded to the throne. Attacked at the same time by Russia,
+Poland, and Denmark, this young hero invaded the last-named country
+and compelled its king to conclude peace. After relieving Riga,
+Charles marched into Russia at the head of 8,500 men, and on the 30th
+of November defeated a Russian army of 63,000 men. This victory proved
+a misfortune, because it inspired the King of Sweden with contempt for
+Russian soldiers and made him careless, whereas Peter worked
+cheerfully and hard to profit from the lesson. While Charles was
+absent in Poland, his army was twice defeated.</p>
+
+<p>Each of the two antagonists was worthy of the other's steel. Both were
+brave, but Charles was impetuous, whereas Peter acted upon cool
+judgment. The war continued <span class="pagenum"><a id="page160" name="page160"></a>(p. 160)</span> until 1709 when Charles found
+himself in Little Russia, far away from supplies and reinforcements,
+in a Russian winter which happened to be exceptionally severe. In the
+spring he laid siege to Pultowa. The czar arrived on the 15th of June
+with 60,000 men; Charles had 29,000. On July 8, 1709, the battle of
+Pultowa was fought and Charles was defeated; he narrowly escaped being
+captured. With Mazeppa and the Pole Poniatowski, he made his way
+across the Turkish frontier, and remained until 1713, in the territory
+of the Sultan, whom he finally induced to declare war against Peter.
+This victory gave Peter the longed-for port on the Baltic, since
+Sweden was no longer in a condition to stop him.</p>
+
+<p>What induced Sultan Ahmed III to risk war with Russia, was the hope of
+regaining Azof. Peter, on the other hand, hoped for an opportunity to
+capture Constantinople, the Czargrad of former times. He knew that he
+had the sympathy of the many Christians of the Greek Church, who were
+suffering under the yoke of the Turk. Trusting upon their support,
+Peter arrived on the bank of the Pruth with 38,000 exhausted soldiers.
+There he found himself surrounded by 200,000 Turks and Tartars. Peter
+gained a slight success, but not of sufficient importance to extricate
+or relieve him. Fearing an overwhelming calamity, Peter was prepared
+to make immense sacrifices in return for peace, and even to surrender
+Azof and the territory taken from Sweden, when his second wife
+Catherine had a happy thought. She collected all the money and jewels
+in the Russian camp, and sent them as a present to the Grand Vizier in
+command <span class="pagenum"><a id="page161" name="page161"></a>(p. 161)</span> of the enemy, asking at the same time, what terms he
+would make. They were found unexpectedly reasonable: the surrender of
+Azof, the razing of the Russian forts erected on Turkish territory,
+and that Charles XII should be free to return to Sweden. Peter
+accepted eagerly, much as he regretted the loss of Azof and the
+failure of his schemes.</p>
+
+<p>In 1713, a Russian fleet under Admiral Apraxine, with Peter serving
+under him as vice-admiral, captured several cities on the Baltic, and
+a Russian force entered north Germany. An alliance was formed against
+him and Peter decided to make an attempt at an alliance with France.
+In 1718, just as peace was being concluded with Charles XII, the King
+of Sweden, died and war broke out anew, lasting until 1721, when, by
+the Peace of Nystad, Sweden surrendered to Russia Livonia, Esthonia,
+and part of Finland. Peter had his way: Russia had open ports.</p>
+
+<p>Peter was greatly pleased, and Russia rejoiced with him. The senate
+and Holy Synod conferred upon him the titles of "the Great, the Father
+of his country, and Emperor of all the Russias." In 1722, Peter led an
+expedition to the Caspian Sea. He captured Baku and five other
+important towns. He died three years later, in 1725.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XIX&mdash;PETER THE GREAT AND HIS TIME. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page162" name="page162"></a>(p. 162)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>Before judging Peter the Great, the time in which he lived, and the
+conditions which prevailed should receive careful consideration.
+Throughout Western Europe, in France, Germany, Spain, and Italy, in
+parliamentary England and republican Holland, the people, that is the
+masses, toiled early and late for the privilege of paying the taxes;
+all immunities were reserved for the favored few composing the
+aristocracy.</p>
+
+<p>There was no education among the people, with the exception perhaps of
+Holland, then still a power of the first rank. The principle was that
+the interests of the individual were unworthy of consideration by the
+side of those of the State. That was the case in France as well as in
+Russia. Peter inherited the idea of autocratic power, and his travels
+in Europe conveyed to him nothing to upset or contradict that idea. He
+cannot, therefore, be considered in the light of a tyrant. He acted,
+so far as he could know, within his prerogative, and did his duty as
+he saw it.</p>
+
+<p>Russia, with a thin and scattered population largely engaged in
+agriculture, felt no impulse toward progress. The moujik lived as his
+father had lived. He never came in contact with people of a superior
+civilization who, by <span class="pagenum"><a id="page163" name="page163"></a>(p. 163)</span> introducing new wants, could make him
+discontented with his lot. Knowing no desire but to satisfy his
+physical craving, he bore the extremes of heat and cold with equal
+fortitude; the soil and his labor provided for his subsistence. A life
+so sordid must either brutalize man or feed his imagination with the
+unknown and dreaded forces of nature; superstition, deep and strong,
+became part of the peasant's existence. It is generations before a
+traditional and deep-rooted belief can be eradicated.</p>
+
+<p>But Peter the Great gave as little thought to the moujik as did Louis
+XIV to the peasants of France. His influence was exerted upon the
+boyards, and among them the opposition was the stronger as they had
+been imbued with Asiatic ideas under the Tartar yoke. Here the great
+muscular strength of Peter rendered him great service. He did not
+hesitate to use a stick upon the highest officials any more than Ivan
+the Terrible had used his iron-tipped staff. Even Menzikoff was
+chastized in this manner. Frederick the Great of Prussia did the same
+afterwards. Nor was this method of punishing without its use. One day
+when Peter was looking over the accounts of one of his nobles, he
+proved to him that, whereas the boyard had been robbing the
+government, he in turn had been robbed by his steward. The czar took
+the noble by the collar and applied the stick with a muscular arm and
+great vigor. After he had punished him to his heart's content, he let
+him go, saying, "Now you had better go find your steward and settle
+accounts with him."</p>
+
+<p>It was Peter's purpose to make the Russians again into <span class="pagenum"><a id="page164" name="page164"></a>(p. 164)</span>
+Europeans. He rightly deemed it best to begin with externals, because
+they are the object lessons of changes. The Russian boyard was
+attached to the long caftan or tunic adopted from the Tartars, but
+above all he was devoted to the hair on his face. The beard was doomed
+by the czar. He could not play barber to all his subjects, but he
+imposed a heavy tax upon unshaven faces. Owners of beards paid from
+thirty to one hundred rubles, and moujiks had to pay two pence for
+theirs every time they entered a city or town.</p>
+
+<p>The reform which had the most lasting influence upon Russia, was the
+abolition of the landed nobility as a separate class. They would be
+known as "<i>tchin</i>" or gentlemen, and any one who entered the service
+of the government, regardless of birth, was at once entitled to be
+classed among the <i>tchinovnik</i>. From that time the terms gentleman and
+officer, became synonymous. Every service, civil, military, naval, or
+ecclesiastic, was divided into fourteen grades. The lowest grade in
+the civil service was held by the registrar of a college, the highest
+by the Chancellor of the Empire; the cornet was at the bottom, the
+field marshal at the top in the army; and the deacon in a church was
+fourteen degrees removed from the Patriarch,&mdash;but all were <i>tchin</i>.</p>
+
+<p>When, in 1700, the Patriarch Adrian died, the dignity was abolished by
+Peter who did not relish the idea of a rival power in the State.
+Instead he created the Holy Synod together with the office of
+Superintendent of the Patriarchal Throne. He gives his reasons in the
+ukase wherein the change is announced. "The simple people," this
+document reads, "are not quick to seize the distinction between
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page165" name="page165"></a>(p. 165)</span> the spiritual and imperial power; struck with the virtue and
+the splendor of the supreme pastor of the Church, they imagine that he
+is a second sovereign, equal and even superior in power to the
+Autocrat."</p>
+
+<p>The Holy Synod consisted of bishops and a Procurator-general who
+represented the czar and as such could veto any resolution. This
+official was often a general. Every bishop had to keep a school in his
+palace, and the sons of priests who refused to attend were taken as
+soldiers. Autocrat though he was, Peter dared not confiscate the
+property of the monasteries, but he forbade any person to enter a
+convent before his thirtieth year. The monks were ordered to work at
+some trade, or to teach in the schools and colleges. At this time, the
+Protestant and Catholic churches of the West tried to make converts,
+and the <i>raskols</i> were hostile to the national church. As a rule Peter
+did not favor persecution; so long as the church did not interfere
+with his authority, there was nothing to fear from him; but upon the
+slightest suspicion his heavy hand was felt. Thus, in 1710, he
+suddenly ordered the expulsion of the Jesuits. He used to say: "God
+has given the czar power over the nations, but Christ alone has power
+over the conscience of man." This did not prevent him from exacting a
+double tax from the raskols in Moscow, nor from punishing cruelly any
+Russian converted to one of the western churches.</p>
+
+<p>The great mass of the people suffered severely by Peter's reforms. The
+peasants as tenants of the large landowners had enjoyed some liberty
+and were legally free men; they were by him assigned to the soil,
+which they were not permitted to leave. Thus they, too, passed into
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page166" name="page166"></a>(p. 166)</span> serfdom. If the proprietor sold the estate, the rural
+population went with it. The owners paid a poll-tax for their serfs.
+These unfortunates could also be sold without the land, but the czar
+made a law that "If the sale cannot be abolished completely, serfs
+must be sold by families without separating husbands from wives,
+parents from children, and no longer like cattle, a thing unheard of
+in the whole world."</p>
+
+<p>The citizens of towns were divided into three classes; to the first
+class belonged bankers, manufacturers, rich merchants, physicians,
+chemists, capitalists, jewelers, workers in metal, and artists;
+storekeepers and master mechanics were in the second; all other people
+belonged to the third. Foreigners could engage in business, acquire
+real estate; but they could not depart from the country without paying
+to the government one tenth of all they possessed.</p>
+
+<p>Cities and towns were administered by burgomasters elected by the
+citizens; this board selected its own president or mayor. If an
+important question arose, representatives of the first two classes
+were summoned for consultation. All the mayors of Russia were subject
+to a magistrate selected from the Council of St. Petersburg, and
+appointed by the czar. This official watched over the interests of
+commerce and agriculture, settled disputes between citizens and
+burgomasters, confirmed local elections, authorized executions when a
+death sentence was pronounced by provincial authorities, and made
+reports to the tsar.</p>
+
+<p>The <i>voïevodes</i> or governors of a province directed all the affairs of
+their jurisdiction and disbursed the revenues <span class="pagenum"><a id="page167" name="page167"></a>(p. 167)</span> as they
+thought best. "Help yourself first!" was the unwritten law, and it was
+universally obeyed. Peter divided his empire into forty-three
+provinces, forming twelve governments each under a viceroy and deputy,
+who were assisted by a council elected by the nobles.</p>
+
+<p>The courts were crude and mediæval, but not more so than in the west
+of Europe. Justice, such as it was, was administered by the General
+Police Inspector, and in large cities there was a police officer for
+every ten houses. Servants who failed to keep the house front clean
+were punished with the knout. Peter created the Bureau of Information,
+a court of secret police, and thus inaugurated the terrible spy system
+which still disgraces Russia.</p>
+
+<p>The douma was abolished, and in its stead Peter created a "Directory
+Senate," which could meet only in presence of the czar. It was
+originally composed of nine members, but it was afterwards increased
+and at last embraced the duties of the Grand Council, the High Finance
+Committee, and the Supreme Court. A fair idea of the moral and mental
+condition of Russia's high aristocracy, may be had from a rule made by
+Peter, forbidding the Senators under severe penalties, while in
+session "to cry out, to beat each other, or to call one another
+thieves."</p>
+
+<p>Peter's visits to the west, taught him the value of factories. He gave
+every possible inducement to foreign capital and skill to come to
+Russia, and patronized home industry wherever he could, as by
+purchasing the uniforms for army and navy from recently established
+mills. Some of his methods appear strange, as, for instance, when he
+ordered every town in Russia to send a stipulated number of shoemakers
+to Moscow, to learn their <span class="pagenum"><a id="page168" name="page168"></a>(p. 168)</span> trade. Those who continued to work
+in the old fashion, were severely punished. The czar would have met
+with greater success, if he had not been hampered by the cupidity of
+the officials, who found means to secure the lion's share of the
+profits.</p>
+
+<p>Peter discarded the old Slavonic alphabet and introduced the one used
+at present. St. Petersburg had four printing presses, Moscow two, and
+there were also some at Novgorod, Tchernigof, and other large places.
+The first newspaper in Russia, the <i>St. Petersburg Gazette</i>, was
+founded by him. He established, in 1724, the Academy of Sciences, in
+imitation of the institution of that name of Paris.</p>
+
+<p>St. Petersburg was founded in 1703. It was far from a promising site
+for a new capital, the dreary wastes, dark forests, and marshes where
+wild ducks and geese found a favorite feeding place. It was exposed to
+frequent floods, and piles were needed before a building could be
+erected. But when this autocrat had made up his mind, objections were
+brushed aside. Peter collected 40,000 men, soldiers, Cossacks,
+Kalmucks, Tartars and such natives as could be found, and put them to
+work. At first he provided neither tools nor shelter, and food was
+often scarce. Thousands of workmen died;&mdash;what did he care? Others
+were compelled to take their place. The fortress of St. Peter and Paul
+arose first; the czar himself was watching the progress from a little
+wooden house on the right bank of the Neva. Men of means were forced
+to build stone houses in the new capital. Swedish prisoners and
+merchants from Novgorod were invited to move to St. Petersburg, and no
+excuse was admitted. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page169" name="page169"></a>(p. 169)</span> Goods could be brought only by boat,
+and no boat was allowed to land unless it carried a certain number of
+white stones to be used as building material. He erected churches, and
+ordered that he should be buried in the Church of St. Peter and Paul.</p>
+
+<p>Peter's domestic life, as we have seen, was not happy. After his
+divorce from his first wife, he married Catherine who, in 1702, had
+been made prisoner at Marienburg. It is not known where she was born,
+but she was probably a native of Livonia, and was a servant in the
+family of Pastor Glück and engaged to be married to a Swedish dragoon.
+She became the property of Menzikoff who gave her to the czar. There
+was a secret marriage which was confirmed by a public ceremony in
+1712, in reward for her services at Pultowa. Peter also instituted the
+Order "For Love and Fidelity," in her honor. A German princess
+describes her thus:&mdash;"The czarina was small and clumsily made, very
+much tanned, and without grace or air of distinction. You had only to
+see her to know that she was lowborn. From her usual costume you would
+have taken her for a German comedian. Her dress had been bought at a
+secondhand shop; it was very old-fashioned, and covered with silver
+and dirt. She had a dozen orders, and as many portraits of saints or
+relics, fastened all down her dress, in such a way that when she
+walked you would have thought by the jingling that a mule was
+passing." She could neither read nor write, but she was sharp, had
+natural wit, and obtained great influence over Peter. They had two
+sons, Peter and Paul, who died in childhood, and two daughters, Anne
+and Elizabeth. The former married the Duke of Holstein.</p>
+
+<p>Alexis, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page170" name="page170"></a>(p. 170)</span> the son by his first wife, was Peter's heir. He had
+grown to be a young man before Peter realized that the result of all
+his efforts depended upon his successor, and the czar began to pay
+attention to his son's education when it was too late, when habits had
+been formed. The czarévitch had imbibed the prejudices of his mother;
+he was narrow-minded, lazy, weak, and obstinate, and associated with
+people to whom Old Russia was Holy Russia, who abhorred reforms of
+every kind. Peter sent him to travel in Germany, but the prince would
+learn nothing. His father warned him in very plain terms. "Disquiet
+for the future," he wrote to Alexis, "destroys the joy caused by my
+present successes. I see that you despise everything that can make you
+worthy to reign after me. What you call inability, I call rebellion,
+for you cannot excuse yourself on the ground of the weakness of your
+mind and the state of your health. We have struggled from obscurity
+through the toil of war, which has taught other nations to know and
+respect us, and yet you will not even hear of military exercises. If
+you do not alter your conduct, know that I shall deprive you of my
+succession. I have not spared, and I shall not spare, my own life for
+my country; do you think that I shall spare yours? I would rather have
+a stranger who is worthy for my heir, than a good-for-nothing member
+of my own family."</p>
+
+<p>Alexis should have known that his father was in terrible earnest, yet
+he did not heed the warning. When Peter was traveling in Western
+Europe, his son fled to Vienna, where he thought that he should be
+safe. Finding that this was not so, he went to the Tyrol and
+afterwards to Naples, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page171" name="page171"></a>(p. 171)</span> but his father's agents traced him and
+one of them, Tolstoï, secured an interview in which he assured the
+prince of his father's pardon, and finally persuaded him to return to
+Moscow. As soon as he arrived there, he was arrested. The czar
+convoked the three Estates before whom he accused the czarévitch.
+Alexis was forced to sign his resignation of the Crown. When he was
+being examined, probably under torture, a widespread conspiracy was
+revealed. Peter learned also that his son had begged the Emperor of
+Austria for armed intervention, that he had negotiated with Sweden and
+that he had encouraged a mutiny of the army in Germany. It was shown
+that his divorced wife and several prelates were in the plot. Peter
+crushed his enemies. Most of the persons involved suffered a cruel
+death, and Alexis himself, after being punished with the knout, was
+sentenced to die. Two days later his death was announced. It appears
+that on that day, the heir to the throne was brought before a court
+composed of nine men of the highest rank in Russia and that he was
+beaten with a knout to secure further confessions, and that he expired
+under the torture. Those present were sworn to secrecy, and kept the
+oath.</p>
+
+<p>Peter, therefore, had no male heir. Alexis, however, had left a son
+Peter by Charlotte of Brunswick whom he married against his will. In
+1723 the czar ordered Catherine to be crowned as Empress. He had
+established the right to select his successor but failed to do so,
+owing to his sudden death.</p>
+
+<p>The following description of Peter the Great at the age of forty, is
+given by a Frenchman; "He was a very tall <span class="pagenum"><a id="page172" name="page172"></a>(p. 172)</span> man, well made
+though rather thin, his face somewhat round, with a broad forehead,
+beautiful eyebrows, a short nose, thick at the end; his lips were
+rather thick, his skin was brown and ruddy. He had splendid eyes,
+large, black, piercing, and well-opened; his expression was dignified
+and gracious when he liked, but often wild and stern, and his eyes,
+and indeed his whole face, were distorted by an occasional twitch that
+was very unpleasant. It lasted only a moment, and gave him a wandering
+and terrible look, when he was himself again. His air expressed
+intellect, thoughtfulness, and greatness, and had a certain grace
+about it. He wore a linen collar, a round wig, brown and unpowdered,
+which did not reach his shoulders; a brown, tight-fitting coat with
+gold buttons, a vest, trousers, and stockings, and neither gloves nor
+cuffs; the star of his order on his coat, and the ribbon underneath
+it; his coat was often unbuttoned, his hat lay on the table, and was
+never on his head, even out of doors. In this simplicity, however
+shabby might be his carriage or scanty his suit, his natural greatness
+could not be mistaken."</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XX&mdash;THE SUCCESSORS OF PETER THE GREAT. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page173" name="page173"></a>(p. 173)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>Peter's strong hand had stifled the opposition to his reforms, but
+with his death it reappeared. There were, therefore, two parties in
+Russia: the men who had assisted the dead czar, Menzikoff, Apraxine,
+Tolstoï, and others, such as the members of the secret Court who had
+witnessed the violent death of Peter's only son. They dreaded the
+succession of Peter's grandson, the boy who, although only twelve
+years old, might order an investigation of his father's death. These
+men held the power and decided that, since Catherine had been crowned
+as Empress, it was she who should succeed. Thus the former maid
+servant, not even a native Russian, became Empress of all the Russias.
+There were some protests in favor of Peter's grandson, but they were
+disregarded.</p>
+
+<p>Menzikoff who was the cause of Catherine's rise, fancied himself
+all-powerful, and there was jealousy among Peter's associates.
+Menzikoff sent one of them, Tolstoï, to Siberia, but Catherine would
+not consent to the punishment of the other friends of the late czar.
+She was honest in carrying out Peter's unfinished projects. He had
+planned the marriage of his daughter Anne to the Duke of Holstein: the
+wedding took place; he intended to send an exploring expedition to
+Kamtschatka; she engaged <span class="pagenum"><a id="page174" name="page174"></a>(p. 174)</span> the services of a Danish captain,
+Bering, who discovered the sea and strait named after him. The Academy
+of Sciences was opened in 1726. She, however, changed the Senate into
+a Secret High Council, which met under the presidency of the empress.</p>
+
+<p>Catherine died in 1727, and on her deathbed appointed Peter's
+grandson, then fourteen years old, as her successor. In case of his
+death, the throne would go to Anne, and next to Elizabeth. During his
+minority these two daughters assisted by the Duke of Holstein,
+Menzikoff, and some other high officers, would constitute a Board of
+Regents.</p>
+
+<p>Menzikoff had taken precautions. He had obtained her consent that the
+young heir, Peter II, should marry one of his daughters, a young lady
+two years older than the boy. He showed, in his letters to Peter, that
+he looked upon him as his son. He also intended his own son to marry
+the boy's sister Natalia. There was one member of Peter the Great's
+family who did not approve of Menzikoff's schemes, Elizabeth, the
+young czar's aunt, then seventeen years old. Not long after
+Catherine's death, Menzikoff fell ill; he was compelled to keep to his
+rooms, and in that time Elizabeth roused her nephew's suspicions.
+Peter left Menzikoff's palace and when Catherine's favorite tried to
+resume his authority, he was arrested and exiled to his estates. Soon
+after he was sent to Siberia, where he died two years later, in 1729.</p>
+
+<p>The Dolgorouki family succeeded, but its head committed the same
+mistakes, besides showing a tendency to undo the work of Peter the
+Great. The young czar was growing <span class="pagenum"><a id="page175" name="page175"></a>(p. 175)</span> weary of the Dolgorouki
+when, in January 1730, he caught cold and died after a brief illness.</p>
+
+<p>It was during his short reign that Prussia, Austria, and Russia, first
+seriously discussed the partition of Poland. A treaty was signed
+between Prussia and Russia whereby the two powers agreed to select and
+support a candidate for the throne of that kingdom which was to
+illustrate the truth that "a kingdom divided against itself cannot
+exist."</p>
+
+<p>Peter's death left Russia without a male heir. There were, as we have
+seen, two daughters from his marriage with Catherine. Anne, who had
+married the Duke of Holstein, had died in 1728, leaving a son also
+named Peter. Elizabeth, the other daughter, was in St. Petersburg,
+quietly engaged in establishing a party of her own. There were,
+besides, two other parties having claims upon the throne. Ivan, the
+weak-minded half-brother of Peter the Great, had been married and had
+left two daughters, Anne, Duchess of Courland, and Catherine, Duchess
+of Mecklenburg.</p>
+
+<p>The decision rested with the Secret High Council. Dolgorouki's claim,
+that Peter II had made a secret will leaving the throne to his bride,
+was laughed to scorn. The members of the High Council saw an
+opportunity to secure most of the autocratic power for themselves, and
+resolved to offer the throne to Anne of Courland, provided that she
+subscribed to the following conditions: That the Secret High Council
+should always consist of eight members, all vacancies to be filled by
+themselves; that she could make neither war nor peace, nor appoint an
+officer above the rank of colonel, without the consent of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page176" name="page176"></a>(p. 176)</span>
+the Council; that she could not condemn a noble to death, nor
+confiscate his property, without a trial; and that she could neither
+appoint a successor, nor marry again without the approval of the
+Council. She was also to sign an agreement whereby she would forfeit
+the crown "in case of my ceasing to observe these engagements." The
+Council also decided upon moving the capital back to Moscow.</p>
+
+<p>This might have been the beginning of a more liberal government for
+Russia, since it diminished the power of the czar and the people would
+have benefited by the increased rights of the nobles, as was the case
+in England. It was the nobility who objected, from fear that the power
+might be absorbed in the families of the Council members. Anne of
+Courland accepted the conditions and came to Moscow. There she
+received letters from the enemies of the Council imploring her to
+disregard her promises. On the 25th of February, 1731, the Council was
+in session when an officer appeared summoning them before the czarina.
+Upon arrival in the apartment, they found about eight hundred persons
+presenting a petition that Anne might restore autocracy. She read it
+and seemed astonished: "What!" she exclaimed, "the conditions sent to
+me at Mittau were not the will of the people?" There was a shout of
+"No! no!" "Then," she said, addressing the Council, "you have deceived
+me!" Anne was a true daughter of the czars. She began by exiling the
+principal members of the Council to their estates; when she saw that
+there was no opposition, they were sent to Siberia; and when no one
+remonstrated, other members were condemned to a cruel death.</p>
+
+<p>Anne <span class="pagenum"><a id="page177" name="page177"></a>(p. 177)</span> was thirty-five years old when she was crowned as
+czarina. She had been in Germany so long that she preferred to
+surround herself with Germans who did serve her well, but they
+naturally aroused the jealousy and hatred of the Russian nobles. In
+1733, Augustus II, King of Poland, died. Russia, Prussia, and France,
+each had a candidate. Austria and Russia favored Augustus III of
+Saxony, and Louis XV of France supported his father-in-law Stanislas
+Lecszinski.</p>
+
+<p>This candidate secretly proceeded to Warsaw, where he was elected by a
+vote of 60,000 against 4,000. A Russian army crossed the frontier,
+whereupon Stanislas withdrew to Dantzig and the Russians proclaimed
+Augustus III. The war spread and a Russian army of 20,000 men advanced
+as far as Heidelberg in Baden. It ended in 1735, by the Peace of
+Vienna, but Russia became involved in a war with Turkey, as an ally of
+Austria.</p>
+
+<p>In 1736, the Russians took Azof and ravaged the western Crimea. In the
+following year they laid waste its eastern part, and in 1739 they
+gained a great victory at Savoutchani. Austria was not anxious to have
+Russia as a close neighbor, and arranged the Peace of Belgrade.
+(1739.) Russia surrendered all the conquests, except a small tongue of
+land between the Dnieper and the Bug. Sweden threatened war, but it
+was averted. The following year, 1740, Anne died, leaving the throne
+to her infant son, Ivan of Brunswick.</p>
+
+<p>Anne Ivanovna introduced western luxury into Russia. Prior to her
+arrival, fashions were unknown, and people used to wear their clothes
+until they were worn out. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page178" name="page178"></a>(p. 178)</span> Soon after restoring autocracy,
+she returned to St. Petersburg where she endeavored to establish a
+court in imitation of that of France. She could compel her nobles to
+appear in the costume of the west, and, unless they were very wealthy,
+make them sacrifice estates and serfs to pay his increased expenses,
+but of the refinement which creates fashion, there was none. One of
+her guests, a procurator-general was so intoxicated at one of her
+receptions that he insulted one of Anne's most trusted advisers; she
+was a witness, but only laughed heartily.</p>
+
+<p>The young nobles benefited by the German influence at Court, since
+they received a better education. A law was made requiring them to
+study from their seventh to their twentieth year, and to serve the
+government from that age until they were forty-five. Between the age
+of twelve and sixteen they were made to appear before an examining
+board, and any one failing to pass the second time in catechism,
+arithmetic, and geometry, was put into the navy. In the schools for
+young nobles,&mdash;the serfs received no instruction of any kind,&mdash;the
+course of studies was enlarged after the German system.</p>
+
+<p>Anne's infant son, Ivan, was three months old, when he succeeded to
+the throne as Ivan VI. Elizabeth, the daughter of Peter the Great and
+Catherine, was twenty-eight years old; tall and masculine, bright and
+bold, daring on horseback as well as on the water, she had made a host
+of friends among the high officials and the Guards. She found an able
+adviser in the French Minister at St. Petersburg who was anxious to
+destroy the influence of Germany. The Swedes went so far as to begin a
+war, proclaiming <span class="pagenum"><a id="page179" name="page179"></a>(p. 179)</span> the desire to deliver "the glorious Russian
+nation" from the German yoke. Elizabeth decided that the time had come
+to act, when the regiments devoted to her were ordered to the
+frontier. In the night of October 25, 1741, she went with three
+friends to the barracks. "Boys," she said to the men, "you know whose
+daughter I am?" "Matuska," (little mother), they replied, "we are
+ready; we will kill all of them." She said that she did not wish any
+blood to be shed, and added: "I swear to die for you; will <i>you</i> swear
+to die for me?" They made the oath. When she returned to the palace,
+the regent, the infant czar, and the German members of the Government
+were arrested. Ivan VI was sent to a fortress near the Swedish
+frontier. The Germans were brought before a court and condemned to
+death, but Elizabeth commuted the sentence to exile. After this she
+went to Moscow, where she was crowned as czarina. Her next act was to
+send for her nephew, Peter, the son of her sister Anne of Holstein. He
+came and entered the Greek Church, when he was proclaimed as heir to
+the throne as Peter Feodorovitch.</p>
+
+<p>Sweden demanded the cession of the territory conquered by Peter the
+Great, and, since Elizabeth refused, the war continued. But Sweden was
+no longer the kingdom of Charles XII; the Russians were everywhere
+victorious, and by the Peace of Abo, in 1743, Sweden ceded South
+Finland and agreed to elect Elizabeth's ally, Adolphus of Holstein, as
+heir to the throne.</p>
+
+<p>In 1740 the Emperor of Germany died, after obtaining from the powers
+the consent to set aside the Salic Law of succession, in favor of his
+daughter. This law restricted the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page180" name="page180"></a>(p. 180)</span> right of succession to
+male heirs exclusively. In violation of the pledged word, several
+claimants appeared to contest the claim of his daughter Maria Theresa,
+and since almost every nation took sides, it was important to know
+what Russia would do. Elizabeth was undecided; at least, she played
+with both sides until 1746, when she entered into an alliance with
+Maria Theresa, while England promised subsidies in money. It was,
+however, 1748 before a Russian army of 30,000 men passed through
+Germany and took up a position on the Rhine. In the same year the war
+was ended by the Peace of Aix-la-Chapelle, without the Russians having
+been under fire.</p>
+
+<p>Elizabeth hated Frederick the Great of Prussia. She claimed that "The
+King of Prussia is certainly a bad prince who has no fear of God
+before his eyes; he turns holy things into ridicule, and he never goes
+to church." The real reason was that Frederick had expressed his
+opinion about Elizabeth's private life, and she was not the woman to
+forgive his remarks. Then again, Frederick had an excellent army of
+200,000 men; Elizabeth's chancellor, on that account, called Prussia
+"the most dangerous of neighbors, whose power it was necessary to
+break."</p>
+
+<p>Russia, Austria, France, and Saxony, entered into a secret alliance
+against Prussia. Frederick found it out, and in 1756, began the famous
+Seven Years' War. The same year, 83,000 Russians under Apraxine
+crossed the frontier and seized East Prussia. A battle was fought; the
+Russians were the victors, but Apraxine fell back across the Niemen.
+France and Austria suspected treachery; Apraxine was arrested and the
+chancellor was <span class="pagenum"><a id="page181" name="page181"></a>(p. 181)</span> dismissed and exiled. Fermor was appointed
+commander-in-chief.</p>
+
+<p>The Russian army recrossed the frontier in 1758, took Königsberg and
+bombarded Küstrin on the Oder. Frederick with 32,000 men attacked the
+Russian army 89,000 strong at Zorndorf. The Russians fought stubbornly
+but were defeated with a loss of 20,000 men. Fermor was recalled, and
+succeeded by Soltykof who, in 1759, entered Frankfort on the Oder.
+Another battle was fought and Frederick was defeated by greatly
+superior numbers. He lost 8,000 men. Prussia was exhausted, but his
+enemies, too, began to feel the expense of the war. Elizabeth,
+however, was determined to humble the outspoken King when she died
+suddenly in 1761. She was succeeded by her nephew Peter Feodorovitch
+under the name of Peter III.</p>
+
+<p>Elizabeth, although careless in her mode of living, was a stout
+supporter of the Greek Church. In 1742, she agreed with the Holy Synod
+to suppress all other churches, as well as the Mosques or Mahomedan
+temples in the south. This caused a revolt of the Mahomedans. The Jews
+were also expelled in some parts of the empire. A fever of fanaticism
+broke out; fifty-three <i>raskolnik</i> in Russia, and one hundred and
+seventy-two in Siberia, burned themselves to death.</p>
+
+<p>Count Ivan Schouvalof, one of Elizabeth's friends, believed in
+education and was given a free hand. He ordered that the priests and
+their children should attend school, on penalty of being whipped. He
+founded the University of Moscow, which has educated many learned
+Russians. To induce students to enter, he induced Elizabeth to
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page182" name="page182"></a>(p. 182)</span> make a law that all students should be tchins of the tenth
+grade, and the professors hold the eighth grade. He sent young men
+abroad to study and established higher schools in every Government.
+Schouvalof was also the founder of the Academy of Fine Arts at St.
+Petersburg.</p>
+
+<p>That capital was growing; its population was 74,000 under Elizabeth.
+She built the Winter Palace and saw the plans for Tsarskoé Selo, the
+magnificent retreat of the Russian emperors. She reëstablished the
+Senate, as organized by Peter the Great.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XXI&mdash;RUSSIA UNDER CATHERINE II (THE GREAT). <span class="pagenum"><a id="page183" name="page183"></a>(p. 183)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>Peter III was thirty-four years old when he succeeded to the throne.
+Although it was twenty years since his aunt Elizabeth sent for him
+from Holstein, he was more of a German than a Russian, and had an
+intense admiration for Frederick the Great. He at once reversed
+Russia's policy, ordered the commander-in-chief of the Russian armies
+to leave his Austrian allies, and made peace with the King of Prussia
+to whom he restored all Russia's conquests. Then he entered into an
+alliance with Frederick, which was the means of saving Prussia.</p>
+
+<p>Peter relieved the nobles of the duty of serving the state, for which
+they were so grateful that they proposed to erect his statue in gold;
+he heard of it, and forbade their doing so. He abolished the Secret
+Court of Police, and showed great kindness to the raskols and
+permitted many of them to return from Siberia. A host of other exiles
+were recalled, and he thought of relieving the hard lot of the
+moujiks.</p>
+
+<p>For all this, he was unpopular and disliked. His disregard for old
+Russian customs and his mode of life gave deep offense. He was married
+to Sophia of Anhalt, who had <span class="pagenum"><a id="page184" name="page184"></a>(p. 184)</span> assumed the name of Catherine;
+she was a woman of decided ability and strong character. Peter wanted
+a divorce. She heard of it and contrived a conspiracy among the high
+nobles and officers of the army and navy. Peter had no thought of
+danger, when he ordered the arrest of Passek, a young officer and
+favorite of Catherine. Thinking that the conspiracy had been
+discovered, she left her palace in the outskirts and came to St.
+Petersburg where the three regiments of Foot Guards declared in her
+favor, and Peter's uncle was arrested by his own regiment of Horse
+Guards. When Catherine entered the Winter Palace, she was sure of the
+army and navy; Cronstadt was seized by her supporters, and she issued
+a proclamation assuming the government. At the head of 20,000 men, she
+marched upon the Palace, where the czar, her husband, was residing.</p>
+
+<p>Peter fled to Cronstadt and sought the Admiral. "I am the czar," he
+said. "There is no longer a czar," was the reply, and all Peter could
+do was to return to his palace, where he abdicated "like a child being
+sent to sleep," as Frederick the Great expressed it. He then called on
+his wife, "after which," Catherine tells us, "I sent the deposed
+emperor, under the command of Alexis Orlof accompanied by four
+officers and a detachment of gentle and reasonable men, to a place
+called Ropcha, fifteen miles from Peterhof, a secluded spot, but very
+pleasant." Four days later Peter III was dead. Catherine declared that
+he died of colic "with the blood flying to the brains."</p>
+
+<a id="img013" name="img013"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/img013.jpg" width="400" height="572" alt="Catharine II" title="Catharine II">
+</div>
+<p class="figcenter">Catharine II</p>
+
+<p>But one was living with just and strong claims to the throne. Ivan VI,
+the infant czar sent to prison by Elizabeth in <span class="pagenum"><a id="page186" name="page186"></a>(p. 186)</span> 1741, was
+now twenty-one years old. It was reported that he had lost his reason,
+which may have been true or false. Catherine disposed of him. She
+said: "It is my opinion that he should not be allowed to escape, so as
+to place him beyond the power of doing harm. It would be best to
+tonsure him (that is, to make a monk of him), and to transfer him to
+some monastery, neither too near nor too far off; it will suffice if
+it does not become a shrine." She did not desire that the people
+should make a martyr of a descendant of Peter the Great, while she, a
+foreign woman, was occupying the throne. Poor Ivan was murdered by his
+keepers two years later, when a lieutenant of the Guards was trying to
+effect his escape. After that, Catherine had no rival for the crown,
+except her son Paul, whom she disliked.</p>
+
+<p>At first it seemed as if Catherine would reverse her husband's policy
+with regard to Prussia. She gave orders to the army to leave the
+Prussian camp, but she did not command active hostilities; since the
+parties felt the exhaustion of a seven years' struggle, peace
+negotiations were begun and concluded successfully.</p>
+
+<p>Catherine made Russia a party to the System of the North; that is, she
+entered into an alliance with England, Prussia, and Denmark, as
+against France and Austria. Nearly all Europe was deeply interested in
+the severe illness of the King of Poland, because of the election
+which must follow his death. Unhappy Poland was bringing destruction
+upon itself. A lawless nobility kept the country in anarchy, and
+religious persecution, which had disappeared elsewhere, was still
+rampant. It was the gold distributed by interested powers, that
+controlled the vote <span class="pagenum"><a id="page187" name="page187"></a>(p. 187)</span> of the Diet, and since it was merely a
+question of the highest bidder, Frederick the Great and Catherine came
+to an understanding. They decided to elect Stanislas Poniatowski, a
+Polish noble. France and Austria supported the Prince of Saxony, who
+was also the choice of the Court party. After the death of Augustus
+III, the Diet assembled and elected the French and Austrian candidate.
+Members of the Diet asked for Russian intervention and, supported by
+Catherine's army, Poniatowski was placed on the throne.</p>
+
+<p>Russia and Prussia were not satisfied; they wanted part of the kingdom
+and the prevailing anarchy on their frontiers justified them. But
+Catherine made a pretext out of Poland's religious
+intolerance,&mdash;although the same existed in Russia. In 1765, Koninski,
+the Bishop of the Greek Church presented to the King a petition asking
+redress for a number of grievances which he enumerated. The King
+promised relief and submitted the matter to the Diet of 1766. The
+majority would not hear of any tolerance, although Russia had on the
+frontier an army of 80,000 men ready to invade Poland. The Diet of
+1767 showed the same foolish spirit, but it was broken when two of its
+members, both Catholic bishops, were arrested under Russian orders,
+and carried into Russian territory. The Diet did not appear to resent
+this violation of a friendly territory but entered in 1768 into a
+treaty with Russia, in which it was agreed that Poland would make no
+change in its constitution without Russia's consent. The Russian army
+was withdrawn from Warsaw, and a deputation from the Diet was sent to
+St. Petersburg to thank Catherine.</p>
+
+<p>Two <span class="pagenum"><a id="page188" name="page188"></a>(p. 188)</span> hostile parties soon appeared in arms. The Catholics
+raised the banner "Pro religione et libertate!"&mdash;as if they understood
+what liberty meant! France helped with money, and urged the Sultan of
+Turkey to declare war against Russia, so that Catherine would be
+compelled to withdraw her troops. Russia was inciting those of the
+Greek and Protestant religions to whom assistance was promised.</p>
+
+<p>In the winter of 1768, the Tartars of the Crimea, aided by the Turks,
+invaded Russia, and Catherine dispatched an army of 30,000 men,&mdash;all
+she could spare. In the following year, the Russians attacked and
+defeated the enemy 100,000 strong at Khotin on the Dnieper, and in
+1770 the Khan of the Crimea met the same fate. In the same year at the
+battle of Kagul, 17,000 Russians defeated 150,000 Turks commanded by
+the Grand Vizier. In the same year the Russians destroyed the Turkish
+fleet in the port of Chesmé. In 1771, the Tartars of the Crimea were
+put to rout, and the Russians took Bessarabia and some forts on the
+Danube. They were, however, too late to take possession of the
+Dardanelles, which the Turks had put into a state of defense.</p>
+
+<p>Austria was becoming alarmed at Russia's victories, and lent a willing
+ear to the suggestion of Frederick the Great that it would be safer to
+permit Russia to gain territory belonging to Poland, provided Austria
+and Prussia should receive their share. On February 17, 1771, a treaty
+was concluded between Russia and Prussia, and accepted by Austria in
+April, whereby Poland was deprived of a good part of its territory.
+Catherine, secured White Russia with a population of 1,600,000;
+Frederick <span class="pagenum"><a id="page189" name="page189"></a>(p. 189)</span> the Great took West Prussia with 900,000
+inhabitants, and Austria received Western Gallicia and Red Russia with
+2,500,000 people. This was the beginning of the end of Poland.</p>
+
+<p>The peace negotiations with Turkey were broken off, and war was
+resumed. Being busy elsewhere, Catherine could not prevent a <i>coup
+d'état</i> in Sweden, which saved that country from the fate of Poland.
+Besides suffering from these constant wars, Russia was visited by the
+plague, which in July and August, 1771, daily carried off a thousand
+victims in Moscow alone. The Archbishop, an enlightened man, was put
+to death by a mob for ordering the streets to be fumigated. Troops
+were necessary to restore order.</p>
+
+<p>The condition of the country was dreadful. Alexander Bibikof was sent
+to suppress a dangerous insurrection, he wrote to his wife after
+arriving on the spot, that the general discontent was frightful. It
+was for this reason that Catherine concluded peace with the sultan in
+1774; besides an indemnity, she received Azof on the Don and all the
+strong places in the Crimea, and was recognized as the protector of
+the sultan's Christian subjects. In 1775, she finally broke the power
+of the Cossacks.</p>
+
+<p>Through the mediation of France and Russia, a war between Prussia and
+Austria concerning the succession in Bavaria, was narrowly averted.
+During the American War of Independence, Russia, Sweden, Denmark,
+Prussia, and Portugal, proclaimed armed neutrality, and Holland
+declared war, because British warships caused endless trouble to
+vessels under neutral flags. This celebrated act declared "that
+contraband goods" included only <span class="pagenum"><a id="page190" name="page190"></a>(p. 190)</span> arms and ammunition. Most
+countries agreed to this, with the exception of England.</p>
+
+<p>In 1775 Catherine annexed the Crimea, on the plea that anarchy
+prevailed. Turkey protested and threatened war but France meditated
+and the sultan recognized the annexation by the Treaty of
+Constantinople in 1783.</p>
+
+<p>In 1787, a remarkable secret agreement was signed between Russia and
+Austria. It is known as the <i>Greek Project</i>, and was nothing less than
+a scheme to divide Turkey between the two powers. The plot as proposed
+by Russia, was to create an independent state under the name of Dacia,
+to embrace Moldavia, Wallachia, and Bessarabia, with a prince
+belonging to the Greek Church at the head. Russia was to receive
+Otchakof, the shore between the Bug and the Dnieper, and some islands
+in the Archipelago, and Austria would annex the Turkish province
+adjoining its territory. If the Turk should be expelled from Europe,
+the old Byzantine Empire was to be reëstablished, and the throne
+occupied by Catherine's grandson Constantine, "who would renounce all
+his claims to Russia, so that the two empires might never be united
+under the same scepter." Austria agreed on condition that she should
+also receive the Venetian possessions in Moldavia, when Venice would
+be indemnified by part of Greece.</p>
+
+<p>Soon after this the sultan declared war against Russia. This took
+Catherine by surprise. Other enemies sprang up: the King of Prussia
+wanted Dantzig, the King of Sweden, South Finland. The latter invaded
+Russia and might have marched upon St. Petersburg, for all Catherine
+could collect was an army of 12,000 men. A <span class="pagenum"><a id="page191" name="page191"></a>(p. 191)</span> mutiny in the
+camp of Gustavus III, compelled him to return to Stockholm, and the
+opportunity was lost. He defeated the Russians in the naval battle of
+Svenska Sund, but a second engagement was to the advantage of Russia.
+The French Revolution caused him to make peace, and to enter into an
+alliance with Russia against the French.</p>
+
+<p>In the south Russian arms were more fortunate. The Turks were defeated
+in 1789, and 1790, on which occasions a young general named Souvorof
+distinguished himself. Upon the death of Joseph II of Austria, his
+successor Leopold made peace with Turkey at Sistova. (1791.) It was
+the French revolution, which seriously alarmed every crowned head in
+Europe, and which induced Catherine to follow Leopold's example at
+Jassy, in January, 1792, Russia kept only Otchakof and the shore
+between the Bug and the Dniester.</p>
+
+<p>Poland, meanwhile, had made an earnest effort at reform. Thaddeus
+Kosciusko had returned from the United States, where he had fought for
+liberty and was trying to save his own country. Born in 1752, he
+entered a military school founded by the Czartoryskis at the age of
+twelve, and distinguished himself by attention to his studies and
+duties. His father was assassinated by exasperated peasants, and he
+himself was scornfully ejected by a powerful noble whose daughter he
+was courting. Attracted by the struggle of a handful of colonists
+against powerful England, he went to America and served with
+distinction in the War of the Revolution. After seeing Great Britain
+humbled and a new republic established in the New World, he came back
+to Poland and <span class="pagenum"><a id="page192" name="page192"></a>(p. 192)</span> was soon among the foremost reformers,&mdash;a man
+in whom the patriotic Poles justly trusted. But traitors were found to
+accept Russian bribes, and for the second time Poland was despoiled.
+Russia annexed the eastern provinces with 3,000,000 inhabitants, and
+Prussia took Dantzig and Thorn. Austria was told that she might take
+from the French Republic as much as she wished,&mdash;or could.</p>
+
+<p>Manfully and indefatigably did Kosciusko labor to stem the tide of his
+country's ruin. His patriotism aroused even that of the poor,
+down-trodden serfs, who had no interests to defend, yet stood by him
+in battle when the nobles on horseback fled, and wrenched a victory
+out of defeat. Well might Kosciusko thereafter dress in the garb of a
+peasant; a gentleman's dress was a badge of dishonor.</p>
+
+<p>It was in 1794, that this battle took place and gave the signal, too,
+for an effort to restore Poland. But Austria, Prussia, and Russia
+combined, and Poland was lost. Heroic children were made to pay for
+the sins of their fathers. Poland expired in 1795. Prussia took
+Eastern Poland, including Warsaw; Austria annexed Cracow, Sandomir,
+Lublin, and Selm, and Russia took what remained. The patriots
+dispersed; most of them took service with the French, hoping for an
+opportunity to revive their country.</p>
+
+<p>Catherine took especial pains to prevent the ideas, which alone made
+the French revolution possible, from entering into Russia. There was
+no occasion for this prudence. The great majority of the Russian
+people did not know of any world beyond Russia; most of them knew
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page193" name="page193"></a>(p. 193)</span> nothing beyond the narrow horizon of their own village, and
+could neither read nor write. The harrowing tales brought by the
+fugitive French nobles did not tend toward inspiring the Russian
+aristocracy with sympathy for Liberty, Equality, and Fraternity.</p>
+
+<p>Satisfied that Russia was beyond the sphere of what she regarded as
+pernicious doctrines, Catherine determined to make the greatest
+possible profit out of the disturbed condition of Europe. She never
+ceased to incite Prussia and Austria against the French Republic, but
+carefully refrained from spending a dollar or risking a man. She
+pleaded first her war with Turkey, and afterwards the Polish
+insurrection. She said to Osterman, one of her ministers: "Am I wrong?
+For reasons that I cannot give to the Courts of Berlin and Vienna, I
+wish to involve them in these affairs, so that I may have my hands
+free. Many of my enterprises are still unfinished, and they must be so
+occupied as to leave me unfettered."</p>
+
+<p>While Europe was engaged in the hopeless task of establishing and
+maintaining the divine rights of kings, Catherine began a war with
+Persia. One of her "unfinished enterprises" was interrupted by her
+death in November, 1796, at the age of sixty-seven. She left the
+throne to her son Paul.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XXII&mdash;RUSSIA DURING THE WARS OF NAPOLEON. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page194" name="page194"></a>(p. 194)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>Paul was forty-two years old when he succeeded to the throne. His
+youth and early manhood had been far from pleasant. His mother had
+never shown any love for him, and Paul had not forgotten his father's
+sudden death. He was held in absolute submission, and was not
+permitted to share in the government; he had not even a voice in the
+education of his children. The courtiers, in order to please his
+mother, showed him scant courtesy; this is probably the reason of his
+sensitiveness after he came to the throne. He ordered men and women to
+kneel down in the street when he was passing, and those who drove in
+carriages had to halt. It is also shown in this remark, "Know that the
+only person of consideration in Russia is the person whom I address,
+at the moment that I am addressing him." It was justice, but it
+reflected upon his mother's memory when, immediately after her death,
+Paul ordered his father's remains to be exhumed, to be buried at the
+same time and with the same pomp as those of Catherine.</p>
+
+<p>Such a man could have no sympathy with the French revolution which was
+shaking the foundations of Old Europe. He forbade the use of any word
+that might be <span class="pagenum"><a id="page195" name="page195"></a>(p. 195)</span> construed to refer to it. He ordered the army
+to adopt the Russian uniform, including the powdered pigtails of that
+time. Souvorof fell in disgrace because he was reported to have said:
+"There is powder and powder. Shoe buckles are not gun carriages, nor
+pigtails bayonets; we are not Prussians but Russians."</p>
+
+<p>Paul pardoned a number of exiled Poles, and brought the last king,
+Stanislas Poniatowski, to St. Petersburg. He discontinued the war with
+Persia, and instructed his ambassadors to announce that since Russia,
+and Russia alone, had been at war since 1756, "the humanity of the
+Emperor did not allow him to refuse his beloved subjects the peace for
+which they sighed."</p>
+
+<p>Nevertheless, Russia was drawn into Napoleon's gigantic wars. Uneasy
+at the plans of the French Republic, Paul entered into an alliance
+with England, Austria, Naples, and Turkey. He furnished troops for
+England's descent upon Holland, and recalled Souvorof to take command
+of the Russian forces cooperating with those of Austria. The British
+expedition proved a failure, but Souvorof's strategy and indomitable
+courage shed glory upon the Russian army.</p>
+
+<p>When Souvorof arrived at Vienna, he took command of the allied forces
+consisting of 90,000 men. On April 28, 1799, he surprised Moreau at
+Cassano and took 3,000 prisoners. He entered Milan, and soon after
+laid siege to Mantua, Alessandria, and Turin. On June 17, Souvorof was
+attacked on the Trebia; the battle lasted three days, leaving the
+victory to the Russians. After the victory at Novi, on the 15th of
+August, the French were forced to evacuate Italy.</p>
+
+<p>Souvorof <span class="pagenum"><a id="page196" name="page196"></a>(p. 196)</span> had divided his force of 80,000 Russians into two
+corps, one to operate in Switzerland, the other under his own command,
+to conduct the campaign in Italy. His great success brought upon him
+the envy of the Austrian generals, by whom his movements were
+constantly hampered. He therefore resolved to effect a junction with
+the forces in Switzerland, who, on the 26th of September, had been
+defeated at Zurich with a loss of 6,000 men. Souvorof did not know
+this. He reached the St. Gothard on the 21st and crossed it under
+unheard-of difficulties. "In this kingdom of terrors," he writes to
+Paul, "abysses open beside us at every step, like tombs awaiting our
+arrival. Nights spent among the clouds, thunder that never ceases,
+rain, fog, the noise of cataracts, the breaking of avalanches,
+enormous masses of rocks and ice which fall from the heights, torrents
+which sometimes carry men and horses down the precipices, the St.
+Gothard, that colossus who sees the mists pass under him,&mdash;we have
+surmounted all, and in these inaccessible spots the enemy has been
+forced to give way before us. Words fail to describe the horrors we
+have seen, and in the midst of which Providence has preserved us."
+"The Russian, inhabitant of the plain, was awestruck by the grandeur
+of this mountain scenery."</p>
+
+<p>Souvorof brushed the French out of his way until, on the 26th, he
+arrived at Altdorf with the loss of only 2,000 men. Here he received
+information of the defeat at Zurich, and saw that he was surrounded on
+all sides by superior forces. His retreat showed the highest military
+skill, as well as the man's indomitable energy. Over untrodden
+mountains, and snow at one place five feet deep, he <span class="pagenum"><a id="page197" name="page197"></a>(p. 197)</span> guided
+the remains of his army to a lower altitude, and went into winter
+quarters between the Iler and the Lech.</p>
+
+<p>Souvorof complained bitterly to the czar of the Austrian generals, who
+had given him ample reason. At about this time Napoleon had returned
+from his fruitless campaign in Egypt, and at Marengo defeated the
+Austrians, whereby the results of Souvorof's campaign were lost. Paul
+was angry at Austria and Great Britain. Napoleon, shrewdly guessed the
+czar's feelings, released the Russian prisoners, after equipping them
+anew. Paul satisfied that Napoleon was an enemy of republican
+institutions, conceived an intense admiration for his military genius,
+and came to an understanding with him to overthrow British rule in
+India. The czar at once commenced to prepare its execution. Two armies
+were formed; one was to march on the Upper Indus by way of Khiva and
+Bokhara, while the Cossacks under their hetman Denisof would go by
+Orenburg. He was confident that the gigantic task could be
+accomplished, and sent daily instructions to the hetman.</p>
+
+<p>Napoleon had a far better idea of the difficulties, but he did not
+consider the expedition as hopeless. But even if it failed, he would
+be the winner, because England would be compelled to send most of her
+navy to India, while Russia would be too fully occupied, to interfere
+with his projects in Europe. The Cossacks started on their long
+journey, by crossing the Volga on the floating ice when, on the 24th
+of March, 1801, Paul was assassinated in his palace.</p>
+
+<p>There was no doubt as to the guilty men, but Paul's son, Alexander,
+who succeeded him, did not order an investigation. Pahlen, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page198" name="page198"></a>(p. 198)</span>
+Panine, Zoubof, and others, known as the "men of the 24th of March,"
+were removed from office, but that was their only punishment. Paul's
+mother had alienated her grandchildren from the father, and Alexander
+always showed greater affection for Catherine than for Paul. The
+greatest sufferer was Napoleon, who saw his grand schemes go up in
+smoke. Alexander reversed his father's policy, both at home and
+abroad. He came to an understanding with England. Napoleon tried
+earnestly to secure the new czar's friendship. He wanted a free hand
+in Europe and in return offered the same privilege in Asia, but
+Alexander mistrusted the First Consul. The murder of the Duke of
+Enghien, who, by Napoleon's order, was kidnaped in a neutral territory
+and shot,&mdash;still further alienated the czar.</p>
+
+<p>After Napoleon's coronation as emperor, Alexander entered into an
+alliance with England, whereby he would receive six million dollars
+for every 100,000 men Russia placed in the field. The Emperor of
+Austria and the King of Prussia joined, but the Austrians, whose
+generals seemed unable to learn by experience, were defeated before
+the Russian army could reach the Tyrol. Once again the Russians
+covered themselves with glory by Koutouzof's masterly retreat to the
+north, and Bagration's heroic self-sacrifice. At Olmutz, in the
+presence of Alexander, the Russo-Austrian army, 80,000 strong, was
+attacked by Napoleon with 70,000 men. The Austrians had induced the
+czar to adopt their plan of battle, and it met with the usual result.
+Alexander escaped, escorted by his physician, two Cossacks, and a
+company of the Guards. (Dec. 2., 1805.) Twenty-four days later
+Alexander concluded <span class="pagenum"><a id="page199" name="page199"></a>(p. 199)</span> peace with France by the Treaty of
+Presburg.</p>
+
+<p>The growing power of Napoleon induced Alexander to enter into a new
+coalition with England, Prussia, and Sweden. Russia bore the brunt of
+the war, after Prussia had been rendered harmless after the battles of
+Jena and Auerstadt. The Russians withdrew from Prussian Poland; they
+suddenly left their winter quarters and attacked the French. On the
+8th of February, one of the bloodiest battles was fought at Eylau; the
+French claimed the victory, but it was barren of results.</p>
+
+<p>Napoleon dreaded Russia. He persuaded the Sultan of Turkey and the
+Shah of Persia to declare war, so as to occupy Alexander elsewhere.
+The czar, however, was loyal to his allies until, on the 14th of June,
+his army was almost annihilated at Friedland. This loss compelled him
+to enter into negotiations. On June 25, 1807, the two emperors met on
+a raft at Tilsit. Napoleon was prepared to do almost anything that
+would induce Alexander to cease interfering in Europe. An
+offensive-defensive alliance was concluded, whereby Napoleon agreed
+not to oppose the expulsion of the Turk or Russia's conquest of
+Constantinople. The czar meant to carry out the treaty in letter and
+in spirit, but he soon saw that Napoleon's ambition was limitless, and
+that he was playing with his ally. This was evident by the proposed
+partition of Turkey: nothing came of it. Still he accepted Napoleon's
+invitation to a conference at Erfurt, where he was received by the
+French Emperor amid a court composed of sovereigns and princes. A
+convention was signed on the 12th of October, 1808, whereby Alexander
+promised <span class="pagenum"><a id="page200" name="page200"></a>(p. 200)</span> Napoleon a free hand, in return for the annexation
+by Russia of Finland and the Turkish provinces on the Danube.</p>
+
+<p>This led to a war with Great Britain, Sweden, and Austria, not
+including Turkey and Persia. Russia acquired Finland, when Alexander,
+after convoking the Diet, guaranteed its constitution, privileges, and
+university. In 1809, war again broke out between Austria and France.
+By the terms of the alliance, Russia had agreed to furnish troops, but
+they showed that they did not relish fighting with the French. There
+were two engagements; in one of these, the casualties were one Russian
+killed and two wounded. By an oversight of Napoleon the Poles serving
+under him were to cooperate with the Russians, and, far from doing so,
+they often came to blows. The Russian general constantly sent
+complaints to the czar. Napoleon made a great effort to appease
+Alexander by assigning to Russia Eastern Gallicia with a population of
+400,000. Alexander declined to be represented in the peace
+negotiations at Vienna. Napoleon's creation of the Grand Dukedom of
+Warsaw was a constant menace to Russia.</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile the Russians were uniformly victorious in Turkey; the czar
+concluded peace only when it was evident that war with France was
+unavoidable, and that Russia would need every man. It was on this
+account that he gave easy terms to the hard-pressed Sultan. Russia
+annexed Bessarabia, part of Roumania, Ismaïl, and Kilia on the Lower
+Danube.</p>
+
+<p>The time for the momentous struggle had arrived. Napoleon, the master
+of Continental Europe, thought that he was more than a match for
+serf-ridden Russia. He reckoned <span class="pagenum"><a id="page201" name="page201"></a>(p. 201)</span> upon the echo which the
+words liberty, equality, and fraternity, would awaken in the hearts of
+the moujik, and forgot that they were abstract ideas which to the
+serf, struggling for enough black bread to allay the cravings of
+hunger, were so many empty sounds. He tried to arouse Europe's
+suspicions of Russia's designs, not thinking that any yoke, even that
+of the Tartars, would be a welcome relief to nations mourning for the
+slaughter of their sons.</p>
+
+<p>Napoleon left Paris for Dresden on the 9th of May, 1812; on the first
+of June an army of 678,000 men, including 60,000 Poles, stood ready to
+invade Russia. Alexander had only 150,000 men under Bagration and
+Barclay de Tolly, 90,000 posted on the Niemen, and 60,000 on the
+Vistula; but he issued a proclamation announcing a Holy War. "Rise all
+of you!" he urged, "With the Cross in your hearts and arms in your
+hands, no human force can prevail against you!"</p>
+
+<p>Napoleon advanced clutching shadows. After his army left Wilna,
+leaving dead desolation in its wake, the time soon came when retreat
+was no longer possible. Russian patriotism clamored for battle and
+Russian prudence had to give way to it. All of Koutouzof's remarkable
+influence was required to restrain his men under the retreat which
+foretold victory, because every step forward sealed Napoleon's doom.
+The Corsican knew it but, with the superstition born in him, trusted
+to his star. Finally he drew near Moscow, the Holy City, where Count
+Rostopchine, the governor, was preparing the grand climax of the
+drama, while pacifying Russian patriotism by a series of hardy
+falsehoods. "I have resolved," he explained, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page202" name="page202"></a>(p. 202)</span> "at every
+disagreeable piece of news to raise doubts as to its truth; by this
+means, I shall weaken the first impression, and before there is time
+to verify it, others will come which will require investigation." The
+people implicitly believed his most daring inventions. When he
+evacuated Moscow, he ordered all prisons to be opened, and the guns in
+the arsenal to be distributed among the people; he also had the pumps
+removed and finally gave instructions to set fire to the stores of
+<i>vodka</i> and the boats loaded with alcohol.</p>
+
+<p>Napoleon arrived at the Kremlin on the 14th of September. Short as was
+his sojourn, it was with difficulty that he escaped through the flames
+and found refuge in a park. Why did he waste thirty-five days in the
+charred capital? Was it belief in his star, or was it despair at the
+ruin of his prospects? On the 13th of October, the remnant of the
+Grand Army started on its long journey over the desert it had left
+behind, because all other roads were closed to it. The retreat has
+been described by many writers; but what pen shall do justice to the
+suffering caused by the unusually severe winter, the snow, the ice,
+the hunger, and the thirst? And how many hearts were rent, when the
+news came of the dead, the wounded, and the missing? Napoleon's
+campaign in Russia was the most impressive sermon against war, but it
+fell upon heedless ears.</p>
+
+<p>After the Battle of the Berezina, Napoleon left the army and hurried
+home. All his thoughts were on the effect of the disastrous
+defeat,&mdash;not upon the hundred thousand desolate homes, but upon his
+own fortunes. He arrived in Paris where he gathered 450,000 men, many
+of them <span class="pagenum"><a id="page203" name="page203"></a>(p. 203)</span> mere youths, to support him with their blood. But
+Europe was weary of slaughter. Kings might tremble for their crowns,
+it was the people, aroused to frenzy, that impelled them to action. On
+Napoleon's heels, besides, there was a bloodhound whom nobler
+instincts than mere self-preservation inspired to ceaseless pursuit.
+Alexander I, at this time, earned and deserved the glorious surname of
+The Well-beloved. Not a thought of self-glory or personal
+aggrandizement sullied the relentless chase. Emperors and kings
+dreading the awakened conscience of the people would have made peace,
+and they could have done so with security for themselves, but
+Alexander said, "No!" Under fire at the four days' battle of Leipzig,
+he personally directed reënforcements where they were required. And
+when, at last, the host of invaders stepped on the soil whose people
+during twenty years had committed outrages in almost every known
+country of Europe, they were noble words which the Autocrat addressed
+to his troops whom he had brought so far away from home. "By invading
+our empire," he says, "the enemy has done us much harm, and has
+therefore been subjected to a terrible chastisement. The anger of God
+has overthrown him. Do not let us imitate him. The merciful God does
+not love cruel and inhuman men. Let us forget the evil he has wrought;
+let us carry to our foes, not vengeance and hate, but friendship, and
+a hand extended in peace."</p>
+
+<p>These were not mere words; Alexander the Well-beloved was sincere. But
+it was he who refused to receive Napoleon's envoy at Freiburg, and it
+was he who, when Napoleon, fighting like a tiger at bay, was
+defeating <span class="pagenum"><a id="page204" name="page204"></a>(p. 204)</span> the separated armies, so that the British envoy
+urged to come to terms with him, answered, "It would not be a peace
+but a truce. I cannot come four hundred leagues to your assistance
+every day. No peace, so long as Napoleon is on the throne!" By his
+direction the united armies rolled like an avalanche upon Paris,&mdash;and
+Napoleon gave up the struggle by abdicating.</p>
+
+<p>Again it was Alexander the Well-beloved who intervened when other
+powers would have overwhelmed the fallen colossus. It was Alexander
+who procured for his enemy the sovereignty of the island of Elba, and
+commissioned Count Schouvalof to escort him. "I confide to you a great
+mission;" he said; "you will answer to me with your head for a single
+hair which falls from the head of Napoleon."</p>
+
+<p>At the Congress of Vienna assembled the statesmen to dispose of
+nations and peoples, as their own ambition prompted. Alexander desired
+to unite Poland to his crown, but separate from Russia; but was
+opposed by Austria, Great Britain, and France, who entered into a
+secret alliance against him. Had Napoleon waited two hundred days
+instead of half that time, who knows that he might not yet have been
+the arbiter of Europe? His descent united all factions, and Alexander
+declared that he would pursue Napoleon "down to his last man and his
+last ruble."</p>
+
+<p>Once again armies were set in motion, and once again Napoleon resorted
+to his well-known tactics of destroying his enemies one by one. He
+failed at Waterloo. (June 17, 1815.) Again the allies re-entered
+Paris, the Prussians first but closely followed by the czar and his
+army.</p>
+
+<p>"Justice, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page205" name="page205"></a>(p. 205)</span> but no revenge!" proclaimed Alexander when Blücher
+would have followed Napoleon's example of robbing a country of its
+works of art. The czar stood the friend of France when Prussia
+demanded a frontier which would render her safe from French invasion;
+but he said frankly that he "wished to allow some danger to exist on
+that side, so that Germany, having need of Russia, might remain
+dependent," He was in favor of allowing the French to select their own
+government, but was overruled. At last the allies came to an
+understanding, and Poland was joined to the Russian Crown.</p>
+
+<p>The Polish soldiers who had fought so bravely under Napoleon, placed
+themselves at the czar's service, hoping and trusting that their
+country would revive under a Russian king. Alexander's promises at
+Vienna had been vague, but recent events had made a deep impression
+upon him. In this frame of mind, he directed that Poland be restored.
+This was announced on the 21st of June, at Warsaw amid the roar of
+cannon. Constantine, Alexander's brother, was made King, and a
+legislative body, composed of a senate and house of representatives,
+was formed under a constitution which also guaranteed the freedom of
+the press.</p>
+
+<p>Thus Alexander returned to Russia. Soon after that he gave evidence
+that strong emotions were required to subdue the inborn prejudice in
+favor of autocracy. Russia, of necessity, had acquired an overwhelming
+influence in Europe. This showed at the several Congresses, at
+Aix-la-Chapelle in 1818, at Carlsbad in 1819, at Troppau in 1820, and
+at Verona in 1822. The crowned heads of Europe appeared unable to
+comprehend that the French revolution, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page206" name="page206"></a>(p. 206)</span> with its orgies of
+blood and tears, had produced an impassable abyss between the
+eighteenth and nineteenth centuries. They wished to return to the
+conditions prevailing before the revolution, which caused the success
+of that upheaval; but the people, the masses, had quaffed of the cup
+of liberty, and the taste lingered. The Holy Alliance with its unholy
+aims might ordain what it pleased, the <i>people</i> obstinately refused to
+resume the place of beasts of burden for the benefit of the State.
+Thus a spirit of unrest was perceptible, and when Alexander learned
+that his "I, the czar, will it!" was not able to restore quiet, he
+joined the other crowned heads in their struggle against more liberal
+ideas. From that time his conduct changed.</p>
+
+<p>There was evidence of this in the events occurring in the south. The
+majority of the inhabitants of the Balkan provinces of Turkey belonged
+to the Greek Church, and looked to Alexander for relief from the
+oppressive Mahomedan yoke. The Servians took up arms, the people of
+Greece did the same. On Easter day, 1821, the Patriarch of the Greek
+Church at Constantinople was seized at the altar, and hung in his
+vestment at the door of the church. Three metropolitans and eight
+bishops were also murdered. The news caused deep indignation in
+Russia, but Alexander moved not. He believed in the theory that no
+people should be encouraged in rising against its ordained masters. In
+Russia all liberal ideas were rigidly suppressed.</p>
+
+<p>In 1825, Alexander left St. Petersburg for the south where he intended
+to spend some time. He was full of gloomy forebodings and gave further
+evidence of an unsound <span class="pagenum"><a id="page207" name="page207"></a>(p. 207)</span> mind by having a mass for the dead
+sung in his presence in broad daylight. While in the Crimea he was
+heard to repeat: "They may say what they like of me, but I have lived
+and will die a republican." He died on the 19th of November, 1825,
+while on his journey.</p>
+
+<p>He left no sons. His brother Constantine had renounced the crown when
+he became King of Poland, and in 1823, Alexander had made his next
+brother Nicholas his successor. Alexander's reign marked a new era for
+Russia inasmuch as it was brought into closer contact with Europe, and
+promised to change in thought and impulse, from an Asiatic into a
+European nation. The necessity of securing the help of the masses
+against Napoleon's invasion created newspapers, and writers of unusual
+ability expressed their patriotic thoughts in prose and poetry. In
+1814, the Imperial Library was opened to the public at St. Petersburg.
+It contained at that time 242,000 volumes, and about 10,000
+manuscripts.</p>
+
+<p>In 1803, Captains Krusenstern and Lisianski made the first Russian
+voyage around the world in the <i>Nadejda</i> (the <i>Hope</i>), and the <i>Neva</i>.
+It was on this occasion that Russia entered into relations with the
+United States.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XXIII&mdash;AN EVENTFUL PERIOD. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page208" name="page208"></a>(p. 208)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>Alexander's will came as a surprise upon Nicholas, but Constantine was
+loyal to his promise and after a brief but generous contest, Nicholas
+was crowned at Moscow. Twenty-three days had elapsed since Alexander's
+death, long enough to show that the spirit of unrest had penetrated
+into Russia. On the 26th of December there were some disturbances at
+Moscow, but they were suppressed without great trouble. The secret
+police hunted down the leaders, many of whom were known in art or
+literature, but they suffered death. Nicholas, a man of colossal
+stature, commanding appearance, iron will, passion for a military
+life, of simple and correct habits, was a true champion of the right
+divine of kings. He had neither sympathy nor patience with any
+movement tending toward greater liberty for the people. Nevertheless
+Nicholas was much more popular than Alexander had been, because he was
+the type of the Russian czars, who had increased Russia's power and
+territory.</p>
+
+<p>Not many days after his coronation, Nicholas became involved in a
+quarrel with the Shah of Persia. In vain did the shah call upon Great
+Britain for help; the Persians were twice defeated in 1826, and the
+Russians were on <span class="pagenum"><a id="page209" name="page209"></a>(p. 209)</span> the road to Teheran when the shah preferred
+to save his capital by ceding two provinces, and paying a heavy
+indemnity in 1828. The following year, the Russian Minister at Teheran
+was murdered, but Persia escaped with a humble apology.</p>
+
+<p>Turkey, too, was made to feel Nicholas' heavy hand; urged by other
+powers the sultan submitted to the loss of territory in Asia, which
+had been in dispute, and permitted the free passage of Russian vessels
+between the Black Sea and the Mediterranean. (Convention of Akkerman,
+Oct. 8, 1826.) The czar, after this, took up the Greek question, and
+entered into an agreement with England and France. In vain did the
+sultan offer the plea which had been successful with Alexander, that
+the Greeks "violated the passive obedience owed by subjects to their
+legitimate sovereigns." Nicholas wanted Turkey for himself, and
+proposed to leave no stone unturned to secure possession of
+Constantinople.</p>
+
+<p>After the battle of Navarino, on the 20th of October, 1827, where the
+allied forces destroyed the Turkish fleet. England withdrew,
+suspicious of Nicholas' schemes; but France and Russia continued the
+war until by the Peace of Adrianople, the sultan recognized the
+independence of Greece,&mdash;and ceded to Russia four fortresses in Asia
+and the islands in the delta of the Danube. Russia was thus in
+possession of the whole southern slope of the Caucasus, besides
+holding part of its northern front. The czar began war upon the tribes
+dwelling in the mountains, but found that he had engaged in a very
+difficult enterprise. A soldier-priest named Schamyl defied the power
+of Russia for a quarter of a century. It cost Nicholas <span class="pagenum"><a id="page210" name="page210"></a>(p. 210)</span> more
+in men and money to subdue the liberty-loving mountaineer, than all
+the wars he waged in Asia.</p>
+
+<p>The year 1830, was one of great unrest in Europe. Nicholas was deeply
+angered when his friend Charles X of France was expelled. The
+revolution in Paris was the signal for a similar movement in the
+capital of Poland. Owing to the independent expression of opinion in
+the Diet, Alexander had adjourned that body indefinitely in 1822. At
+the same time the liberty of the press was revoked and the police
+assumed a power in defiance of the law. The Grand Duke Constantine was
+really a friend of Poland, but he was eccentric and impetuous and
+often unconsciously gave offense. In 1830, Nicholas came to Warsaw to
+open the Diet, when its members made demands which he could not grant.
+Both sides were angry when Nicholas returned to St. Petersburg.</p>
+
+<p>As soon as the French tricolor was raised above the consulate at
+Warsaw, the trouble commenced. Taken unprepared, Constantine withdrew
+with his troops. Again the Poles were divided; the patriots advised
+reconciliation with Russia, while hotheads demanded the abdication of
+the Romanofs. The first party sent a deputation to St. Petersburg and
+another to Paris and London, to secure mediation. The czar's answer
+was decisive; he absolutely refused to "make concessions (to the
+revolutionists), as the price of their crimes." Again, too, there was
+discord among the leaders as they entered upon a life or death
+struggle. Poland appealed to Europe. The people were sympathetic, but
+the governments, rejoicing at seeing a revolutionary movement
+suppressed, refused to interfere.</p>
+
+<p>In <span class="pagenum"><a id="page211" name="page211"></a>(p. 211)</span> February, 1831, a Russian army of 130,000 men invaded
+Poland. The Poles showed a heroism which appealed to the people of
+Europe, but more than sympathy was needed to arrest the irresistible
+Russian advance upon Warsaw. Constantine and the Russian
+commander-in-chief fell the victims of cholera, but an epidemic of
+discord struck Poland and sealed its fate. On the 6th of September,
+Warsaw was invested. The capital was forced to surrender. "Warsaw is
+at your feet," wrote the commander-in-chief to the czar, who lost no
+time in trampling upon the conquered. The constitution was abrogated,
+the Diet, a thing of the past. Poland was no more. Where it had stood,
+was a Russian province. Russian officials introduced Russian taxes,
+Russian coinage, and Russian justice such as it was. The Poles saw
+samples of it when thousands were arrested without process of law, and
+were sent to prison or to Siberia, while other thousands lost their
+property by confiscation. In White Russia and Lithuania the use of the
+Polish language was prohibited and the Catholic Clergy were forced to
+"ask" admittance to the bosom of the Greek Church. It must be admitted
+that the Polish peasants benefited by the change. With a view of
+reducing the influence of the nobles, the government issued
+regulations protecting the laborer against the landowner.</p>
+
+<p>The Polish revolution caused the reorganization of European policies.
+Austria and Prussia, each in possession of territory that formerly
+belonged to Poland, entered into friendly relations with Russia,
+whereas England and France, where public opinion could not be
+ignored, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page212" name="page212"></a>(p. 212)</span> drew more closely together. Nicholas was posing as
+the arbiter of Europe and the champion of kings. He assumed the right
+to command, but would soon find his will contested.</p>
+
+<p>This was brought home to him in 1832, when trouble broke out between
+Turkey and Egypt. The Egyptian army was victorious and threatened
+Constantinople, when the sultan appealed to the powers. Russia
+responded at once by sending two armies, but a strong protest from
+England and France caused the withdrawal of the troops of Russia as
+well as those of Egypt. Baffled, Nicholas on June 3, 1833, entered
+into an offensive-defensive alliance with the sultan, which really
+placed Turkey and with it Constantinople in Russia's power. Another
+sharp protest from England and France prevented the consummation of
+the alliance.</p>
+
+<p>In 1839 the trouble between Turkey and Egypt recommenced when Great
+Britain, anxious to preserve Turkey's integrity, entered into an
+agreement with Russia, Austria and Prussia, which was signed at London
+in July, 1840. There was some danger of a war with France but England,
+fearing Russia's designs, returned to her former ally. By the
+Convention of July 13, 1841, Russia's designs upon old Czargrad were
+postponed until a more favorable opportunity. In 1844, Nicholas
+visited England, but his reception in London was cool. He, however,
+entered into an agreement whereby the Khanates of Central Asia should
+remain neutral ground between Russia and India.</p>
+
+<p>In 1846, trouble broke out in Gallicia, where the Poles rose against
+Austria; but as the nobles had to subdue a <span class="pagenum"><a id="page213" name="page213"></a>(p. 213)</span> revolt of their
+own peasants, order was quickly restored. The free city Cracow was the
+resort of the Poles. Russia, Austria, and Prussia sent troops against
+it, and Cracow was annexed by Austria notwithstanding a protest from
+England and France.</p>
+
+<p>The year 1848 will long be remembered for the blows bestowed upon the
+divine right of kings, and the privileges which the sovereigns were
+compelled to concede to the people. The Emperor Ferdinand of Austria
+was expelled from his capital, and the King of Prussia was subjected
+to humiliation by his own people. France proclaimed the republic, and
+Nicholas proclaimed himself the champion of the right divine. He
+dispatched an army into Hungary, which was soon "at the feet of your
+Majesty," and felt the wrath of the frightened Ferdinand.</p>
+
+<p>Notwithstanding this cooperation, the understanding among the three
+powers, Russia, Austria and Prussia, was giving way before individual
+interests. When, in 1852, Prussia attempted to seize the German
+provinces of Denmark, it was Nicholas who compelled her to withdraw.
+On the 8th of May of that year, the independence and integrity of
+Denmark were recognized by the Treaty of London.</p>
+
+<p>In the same year Louis Napoleon made an end to the French Republic by
+the notorious <i>Coup d'État</i>. This gave great satisfaction to the czar
+who was heard to remark: "France has set an evil example; she will now
+set a good one. I have faith in the conduct of Louis Napoleon." The
+new emperor of France did not seem to appreciate this condescension,
+or else he showed gross ingratitude <span class="pagenum"><a id="page214" name="page214"></a>(p. 214)</span> when France and Austria,
+without even consulting Nicholas, settled some troubles in Turkey. The
+czar sent Menzikoff as special envoy to Constantinople to demand a new
+treaty whereby Russia's rights as Protector of the Greek Christians
+should be recognized. Supported as he was by France, the sultan
+refused. Nicholas then had a plain talk with Sir Hamilton Seymour, the
+British Minister at St. Petersburg, wherein he revealed his designs
+upon Turkey. As to Constantinople, he said, he might establish himself
+there as a trustee, but not as a proprietor. Sir Hamilton, as in duty
+bound, notified his government, and England hastened to join France in
+opposing Russia.</p>
+
+<p>Pretending that all he wanted was a recognition of his rights,
+Nicholas, on the 3d of July, 1853, sent an army under Gortchakof
+across the Pruth. At this an allied British-French fleet took up a
+position near the threatened point, but did not cross the Straits,
+which would have been a violation of the treaty. Nicholas stormed; he
+declared that "This was a threat" and would lead to complications.
+Austria proposed a conference at which Russia, Great Britain, France,
+Austria and Prussia assisted. It seemed as if peace would be secured,
+when the sultan demanded that the Russian forces should withdraw,
+whereupon Admiral Nakhimof, on the 30th of November, 1853, destroyed
+the Turkish fleet at Sinopé. The British-French fleet then sailed into
+the Black Sea, and the Russian ships sought shelter in the ports.</p>
+
+<p>In January, 1854, Napoleon III made a last attempt at maintaining
+peace, but Nicholas was thoroughly angry at the publication of
+Seymour's dispatches, claiming that the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page215" name="page215"></a>(p. 215)</span> conversation with
+the British Minister was entitled to secrecy as between "a friend and
+a gentleman." Austria and Prussia resented the contempt which the czar
+had expressed for them, and on the 10th of April England and France
+entered into an offensive-defensive alliance. Ten days later Austria
+and Prussia arrived at a written agreement providing for the
+possibility that the Russians should attack Austria or cross the
+Balkans. Nicholas had aroused all Europe against him.</p>
+
+<p>The Russian fleet was unable to cope with that of the allies, and thus
+condemned to inactivity in the ports. After heroic efforts, the
+Russians were compelled to raise the siege of Silistria, and to retire
+from the Danube, while Austria occupied the evacuated territory. But
+Nicholas was dismayed when, after a conference on July 21, 1854, the
+allied commanders resolved to attack the Crimea. <i>Russia was
+unprepared.</i> It was the assault upon Russia's vaunted "holy soil,"
+which gave a severe blow to the arbiter of Europe, at home as well as
+abroad. Still with clogged energy the Russians worked to construct
+defenses. On the 14th of September 500 troopships landed the allied
+armies, and on the 20th, the Battle of the Alma opened the road to
+Sebastopol. The port of Balaclava was captured by the allies, and
+three bloody battles were fought, at Balaclava on the 25th of October,
+at Inkermann on the 5th of November, and at Eupatoria on the 17th of
+February, 1855.</p>
+
+<p>It seemed as if the knowledge that an enemy was in Russia, aroused the
+Russians from a torpor. Pamphlets and other publications denouncing
+the government in withering terms, seemed to spring up from the
+pavement. "Arise, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page216" name="page216"></a>(p. 216)</span> Oh Russia!" says one unknown writer,
+"Devoured by enemies, ruined by slavery, shamefully oppressed by the
+stupidity of tchinovnik and spies, awaken from thy long sleep of
+ignorance and apathy! We have been kept in bondage long enough <i>by the
+successors of the Tartar khans</i>. Arise! and stand erect and calm
+before the throne of the despot; demand of him a reckoning for the
+national misfortunes. Tell him boldly that his throne is not the altar
+of God, and that God has not condemned us to be slaves forever."</p>
+
+<p>The feeling among his people was not unknown to Nicholas. Whatever may
+be said of him, he was not weakling, fool, or hypocrite, and it was no
+disgrace that he felt as if the ground were giving way under his feet.
+He was upright and sincere, and had lived up to his convictions. There
+is no doubt that when these convictions grew dim, his strength
+vanished. He was heard to exclaim "My successor may do what he will: I
+cannot change." The sincerity of this man of iron showed in his losing
+his courage when doubts arose. Life ceased to have any value for him.
+One day, in February, 1855, while suffering from a severe cold, he
+went out without his overcoat. To the physician who tried to restrain
+him, he said: "You have done your duty; now let me do mine!" A serious
+illness followed, and he sent for his successor to whom he gave some
+instructions. As a message to his people, and a last cry for sympathy,
+he dictated the dispatch "The emperor is dying," which was sent to all
+the large towns of Russia. On the 19th of March, 1855, Nicholas I was
+dead.</p>
+
+<p>Under his directions wealthy merchants were classified as <span class="pagenum"><a id="page217" name="page217"></a>(p. 217)</span>
+"chief citizens," which procured for them exemption from poll-tax,
+conscription, and corporal punishment. They might take part in the
+assessment of real estate, and were eligible to the offices to which
+members of the first class were entitled. The same privilege was
+extended to all who were entitled to the degree of Master of Arts, and
+free-born and qualified artists. It was he who built the first railway
+in Russia, by drawing a straight line between Moscow and St.
+Petersburg. He also joined the Volga and the Don by a canal. His reign
+is also noted for the progress of Russian literature. The works of
+Ivan Tourguénief are known throughout the civilized world.</p>
+
+
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page218" name="page218"></a>(p. 218)</span>
+<a id="img014" name="img014"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/img014.jpg" width="400" height="587" alt="Alexander II" title="Alexander II">
+</div>
+<p class="figcenter">Alexander II</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XXIV&mdash;ALEXANDER II, THE LIBERATOR. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page219" name="page219"></a>(p. 219)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>Alexander II was thirty-seven years old when he succeeded to the
+throne. The war oppressed Russia, and he felt that peace must be
+concluded. But Russian diplomacy loves the tortuous path. The first
+proclamation of the czar announced that he promised "to accomplish the
+plans and desires of our illustrious predecessors, Peter, Catherine,
+Alexander the Well-beloved, and our father of imperishable memory." It
+was hoped that this would cause the other powers to propose peace, on
+account of the expense of the war. Indeed, a conference was proposed
+and took place at Vienna, but the demands of the allies were not so
+modest as Russia expected; hence the war continued, and with it the
+siege of Sebastopol.</p>
+
+<p>The Danube territory was lost to Russia since, on the 2d December
+1854, Austria had undertaken to defend it, and Prussia had agreed to
+help Austria. But Sebastopol was stubbornly defended. In the latter
+part of August 1855, 874 guns vomited death and destruction upon the
+doomed city where the Russians lost 18,000 men. The French had dug
+fifty miles of trenches during the 366 days of the siege, and 4,100
+feet of mines before a single bastion. In one day 70,000 bombs and
+shells were <span class="pagenum"><a id="page220" name="page220"></a>(p. 220)</span> fired into the town. On the 8th of September the
+assault was ordered, and Sebastopol fell.</p>
+
+<p>Again Russia tried what boasting would effect. Gortchakof declared to
+whoever chose to believe him that he would not voluntarily abandon the
+country where Saint Vladimir had received baptism, and the official
+newspaper announced that the war was now becoming serious, and that
+Sebastopol being destroyed, a stronger fortress would be built. This
+meant that Russia was anxious to secure favorable terms. The war had
+cost 250,000 men, and Russia's credit at home was in a bad condition.
+Austria offered the basis of an agreement which was accepted by
+Russia, and on the 25th of February, 1856, a Congress met at Paris.
+Five days later the Treaty of Paris was signed. Russia renounced the
+right of protecting the Christians in the Danubian principalities, and
+restored the delta of that river. The Black Sea was opened to merchant
+vessels of all nations, but closed to all warships, and no arsenals
+were to be constructed on its shores. The sultan agreed to renew the
+privileges of his Christian subjects, but with the understanding that
+the powers should not find cause to interfere. It was a hard blow to
+Russia's prestige, and indefinitely postponed the execution of making
+of Russia the restored Eastern Roman Empire.</p>
+
+<p>Alexander, in many respects, was the opposite of his father; he seemed
+more like his uncle in his younger days when he earned the surname of
+Well-beloved. It may be, however, that Alexander was but the executor
+of his father's instructions, after doubt began to torture him. It is
+known that Nicholas had seriously considered the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page221" name="page221"></a>(p. 221)</span>
+emancipation of the serfs. Alexander took it up in earnest. There were
+two serious difficulties, namely, the compensation to be allowed to
+the serf owners, and the extent of the soil to be allotted to the
+serfs. It must be remembered that, although the peasant had become
+resigned to serve the landowner, his proverb: "Our backs are the
+owner's, but the soil is our own," showed how stubbornly he held to
+the conviction that it was his own land which he cultivated, however
+little profit he derived from his toil. For once the tchinovnik dared
+not interfere; public opinion had so strongly condemned their
+incompetence and dishonesty that the Russian official was glad to
+efface himself; the landowners, on the other hand, showed little
+enthusiasm. They knew what their revenues were, but not what they
+would be under altered circumstances.</p>
+
+<p>Soon after the Treaty of Paris had restored peace, Alexander addressed
+his "faithful nobles" at Moscow, inviting them to consult about the
+proper measures to be taken with the view to emancipation. When this
+produced no results, he appointed a Committee, "for the amelioration
+of the condition of the peasants." The nobles of Poland, seeing what
+was coming, declared themselves ready to emancipate their serfs. The
+czar gave his consent and the ukase containing it was sent to all the
+governors and marshals of the nobility "for your information," and
+also "for your instruction if the nobles under your administration
+should express the same intention as those of the three Lithuanian
+governments."</p>
+
+<p>The press supported the czar, and for that reason was allowed an
+unusual freedom of expression. The plan was formed <span class="pagenum"><a id="page222" name="page222"></a>(p. 222)</span> to
+reconstruct and strengthen the national mir. This was favored by a
+number of large landowners who saw in this plan the beginning of
+constitutional liberty. The czar directed that committees be appointed
+to examine the scheme.</p>
+
+<p>There were at this time 47,000,000 serfs, of whom 21,000,000 belonged
+to private landowners, 1,400,000 were domestic servants, and the rest
+Crown peasants who possessed greater privileges and enjoyed some
+degree of self-government. Their local affairs were administered by
+the mir and an elected council with an elder as executive. They were
+judged by elected courts, that is juries, either in the mir court or
+in that of the volost (district).</p>
+
+<p>Forty-six committees composed of 1,336 land and serf-owners, assembled
+to discuss the future of 22,500,000 serfs and of 120,000 owners. These
+committees declared in favor of emancipation, but could not agree upon
+the allowance of acreage or the indemnity to the owners. Another
+committee of twelve was appointed, presided over by the czar, but
+there Alexander met considerable passive opposition. The czar made a
+journey through the provinces, where he appealed to the nobles,
+warning them that "reforms came better from above than below." After
+his return another committee superior in authority to the one existing
+and composed of friends of emancipation was called. Its members,
+inspired by the czar, drafted laws whereby emancipation was to proceed
+at once, and stringent laws were made to prevent the free peasant from
+again becoming a serf, and to make of him a proprietor upon payment of
+an indemnity. On the 3d of March, 1861, the emancipation ukase was
+published.</p>
+
+<p>The <span class="pagenum"><a id="page223" name="page223"></a>(p. 223)</span> scheme, as is evident, was fraught with difficulty. A
+stroke of the pen by the hand of the czar could set free millions of
+serfs, but all the czar's power stopped short of endowing the serf
+with the dignity and responsibility, which are the freeman's
+birthright. For more than a century and a half, the moujik had been a
+beast of burden, toiling as he was bid, and finding recreation only in
+besotting himself with strong drink whenever he could find the means
+to indulge. Mental faculties, save such as are inseparable from animal
+instinct, had lain dormant; moral perception was limited between the
+knout on one side, and gross superstition on the other. Could such a
+being be intrusted with life and property? When the serf, brutalized
+by generations of oppression, should come to understand that he was
+free to do as he pleased, and that the hovel where he and his brood
+were styed was his to do with as he pleased, what could he be expected
+to do? Would he not seize the opportunity to indulge in his favorite
+craving, and, having sold his property, swell the army of homeless
+vagabonds?</p>
+
+<p>The mir was the only means to prevent this, and mir meant serfdom
+under another name. The landowners disposed of their land, or of so
+much as was required to support the peasants, not to individuals but
+to the mir. To indemnify the owners, the mir could secure a loan
+whereby the debt was transferred from the owner to the government, and
+the mir was responsible for its payment as well as for the taxes. The
+moujik, as part of the mir, was responsible to the community for his
+share of the debt, and was not allowed to leave his village without a
+written permission from the starost or elder. He was, therefore,
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page224" name="page224"></a>(p. 224)</span> in a worse position than before the emancipation because in
+time of distress it was his lord's interest to support him, whereas
+after it he had to deal with a soulless government that demanded the
+taxes regardless of circumstances. The mir might succeed so long as
+the peasant remained in a state of tutelage; education only could lift
+him out of this,&mdash;but this means was not considered by the government.</p>
+
+<p>But whatever may have been Alexander's intentions, the men charged
+with their execution had no sympathy with the moujik. The question
+never occurred to them: How shall we raise the peasant from his
+degradation? The problem before them was, how he should be made to
+support the State, as he had done before. The Russian statesmen had no
+conception of the truth that the wealth of a State is gauged by the
+prosperity of the people.</p>
+
+<p>As to the serf, he did not consider that a boon had been bestowed upon
+him. The soil and the hovel were his, descended to him from his
+forbears! Why, then, should he pay for them? He clung to this idea
+with all the stubbornness implanted by a sense of justice upon a
+limited intelligence. It had been hammered into his head that the
+Little Father at St. Petersburg was conferring a favor upon him, and
+this was within his limited conception; but when he heard what the
+favor was, the only solution which his cunning brain could devise was
+that the nobles had cheated the czar, or that there had been some
+juggling with the ukase. Thus grave disturbances occurred. In one
+district, that of Kazan, 10,000 men rose at the call of the moujik
+Petrof, who promised them the real article of liberty. Troops were
+called out and a hundred peasants besides <span class="pagenum"><a id="page225" name="page225"></a>(p. 225)</span> Petrof were shot.
+Similar disturbances occurred in other provinces. The poor moujik did
+not know that he was saddled with a debt which neither he nor his
+children could hope to pay; but he did know that he was charged with a
+debt which he had not incurred.</p>
+
+<p>Nevertheless, the emancipation was a step forward. Under the liberal
+impulse then rushing irresistibly over Russia's broad level the upper
+classes clamored for reforms. They asked for the re-establishment of
+the douma as the beginning of a constitutional government, but the
+czar was not prepared to grant this, and he was right because under
+existing circumstances the peasants would have to be
+disfranchized,&mdash;and there is small choice between an autocracy and an
+oligarchy.</p>
+
+<p>It is to be regretted that the reforms in the judicial system,
+introduced by Alexander in the ukases of 1862 to 1865, have since been
+rescinded. Secret examinations were displaced by open sessions of the
+courts, and criminal cases were decided by juries; the police was
+forbidden to examine the accused, which duty was placed into the hands
+of a qualified judge. Appeals could be taken to a higher court, and
+the Senate acted as a Supreme Court in the last resort. Apart from
+this system was the justice of the peace who adjudged ordinary police
+cases, acted as an arbitrator, and decided civil suits when the amount
+involved did not exceed 500 rubles ($250). No appeal could be taken in
+cases involving less than thirty rubles in civil suits, or fifteen
+rubles or three days' prison in police offenses. If an appeal was
+taken the case was brought, not before a higher court, but before the
+collective justices of the peace <span class="pagenum"><a id="page226" name="page226"></a>(p. 226)</span> of the district, whose
+verdict could be set aside only by the Senate.</p>
+
+<p>The Russian <i>goubernii</i>, governments, were divided into districts
+(<i>ouiezdi</i>). The imperial ukase of 1864, created <i>zemstvos</i> or
+district assemblies composed of representatives of the landed
+proprietors or gentlemen; or rural communes or mirs, and of the towns.
+These representatives were elected every three years. The assembly
+appointed an executive committee which is in permanent session, but
+the zemstvo assembles once a year. Its duties are strictly limited to
+local affairs, such as keeping roads and bridges in repair; to watch
+over education and sanitation, to report on the condition of the
+harvest, and to guard against the occurrence of famine. Above the
+district zemstvo is the goubernkoé zemstvo or provincial assembly,
+whose members are elected from the district zemstvos. Its duties
+embrace the estimate of the provincial budget, and a general
+supervision over the districts.</p>
+
+<p>Alexander was kindly disposed and meant to do well. He showed it by
+removing the barriers erected by his father between Russia and western
+Europe. Foreigners in Russia were granted civil rights, and Russians
+were allowed to travel abroad. The universities were relieved of
+restraints and Jews who had learned a trade could settle where they
+pleased. All these reforms were so many promises of a new era for
+Russia.</p>
+
+<p>Alexander soon found out that his concessions only served to create
+demands for more. The trouble began in Poland, where the news of
+Nicholas' death was received with relief, if not with joy. Great hopes
+were entertained <span class="pagenum"><a id="page227" name="page227"></a>(p. 227)</span> from the new czar; besides, the Europe of
+1855 was very different from that of 1825: monarchs had learned the
+lesson that the people possessed inalienable rights. Italy had shaken
+off the encumbrance of a number of princelings,&mdash;and was the better
+for it; Austria had been compelled to grant self-government to its
+Hungarian subjects; why, then, should Poland despair of recovering its
+independence?</p>
+
+<p>It was Poland's greatest misfortune that her best sons were always
+divided in opinion; many of them, moreover, thought that Poland's
+cause should command the sacrifices of every people. They forgot that
+their country owed its downfall to itself and that, whereas people
+might express their sympathy, it cannot be expected that they shall
+neglect their own business for the sake of other people. Some of the
+leaders expected that the czar would grant them self-government, and
+Alexander might have done so after some time; but others demanded not
+only independence but that Russia should restore the parts which she
+had owned for so many years that they had become parts of the empire.
+The czar dared not grant such a request, because it would have
+produced a revolution in Russia, besides a war with Austria and
+Prussia, since those powers owned part of Poland. He was, however,
+willing to grant important concessions and did so. In February 1863,
+an insurrection broke out, and Russian troops were dispatched to
+subdue it. The Russians acted with great cruelty, so that England,
+France, and Austria protested on the 17th of June. Russia, knowing
+that Prussia would come to her assistance paid no attention, and in
+1866, Russian Poland <span class="pagenum"><a id="page228" name="page228"></a>(p. 228)</span> became a part of Russia. The Russian
+language displaced the Polish, and Poland is no longer even a name; it
+is a memory and a warning,&mdash;nothing more.</p>
+
+<p>Quite different was Alexander's treatment of Finland. In 1863, he
+convoked the Diet of that grand dukedom, where nobility and people
+appreciated the degree of liberty which they enjoyed. The government
+did not interfere with the national language or religion, but took
+measures that neither should spread in Russia.</p>
+
+<p>Alexander's concessions raised the expectation of a constitution among
+those who knew what the word implies, including the students at the
+universities. These institutions were closed. The provincial zemstvos
+exceeded their authority. That of Tver demanded the convocation of the
+three Estates; that at Toula discussed a national assembly. Was it
+Alexander or his court and ministers who bore the responsibility for
+the suppressive means that were employed? It may be that the attempts
+upon his life, by Karakozof in 1866, and by the Pole Berezofski at
+Paris in 1867, embittered him. But his kindly feeling and love for his
+people, taken in conjunction with a later event, warrant the belief
+that he was ignorant.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h3>XXV&mdash;GREAT EVENTS DURING ALEXANDER'S REIGN. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page229" name="page229"></a>(p. 229)</span></h3>
+
+<h5>NIHILISM.</h5>
+
+
+<p>Prussia's behavior during the Polish insurrection brought her into a
+close friendship with Russia. The result was seen when Austria and
+Prussia, in 1864, invaded the German provinces of Denmark, when Russia
+prevented intervention, and Denmark lost the two provinces by the
+Treaty of Vienna, October 30, 1864. Soon after Prussia and Austria
+quarreled about the spoils. The countries of South Germany supported
+Austria. War began on June 18, 1866, and little over two months later,
+on August 23, 1866, it ended by the Peace of Prague, which gave to
+Prussia Hanover, Schleswig-Holstein, Hesse, Nassau, and the city of
+Frankfort. Prussia did not annex Wurtemburg in compliment to the czar,
+who was related to its king by marriage.</p>
+
+<p>If Russia looked carelessly upon Prussia's growth, not so Napoleon III
+of France. He saw in it a threat, and to offset Prussia's increase of
+power, tried to secure other territory. It was evident that nothing
+but a pretext was needed to bring on war. It was found, and Napoleon
+declared war on July 15, 1870. Once again it was Alexander who
+protected Prussia on the east, by threatening Austria which would
+gladly have seized the opportunity to <span class="pagenum"><a id="page230" name="page230"></a>(p. 230)</span> avenge 1866. As a
+consequence France had to fight the whole of Germany; and Russia
+seized the opportunity for repudiating the treaty of Paris of 1856,
+which forbade the construction of arsenals on the coast of the Black
+Sea and did not permit any war vessels in it. None of the powers felt
+any inclination to fight Russia single-handed, but Prussia proposed a
+conference, which was held at London. The result was that Russia was
+left free in the Black Sea, but the sultan has the right to close the
+Dardanelles to warships.</p>
+
+<p>On January 18, 1871, the King of Prussia became German Emperor, and in
+the following year the Emperor of Russia, the Emperor of Austria, and
+the German Emperor met at Vienna, with the result that an alliance was
+concluded among the three powers.</p>
+
+<p>In 1867 Russia resolved to dispose of its possessions on the western
+hemisphere by selling Alaska, a territory covering 590,884 square
+miles, to the United States. In the same year a Slavophil Congress was
+held at Moscow with the czar's approval. The object was said to be to
+unite all the nations of Slav origin by a bond of friendship; but the
+real purpose was to bring them under the rule of the czar. This was
+apparent when it was resolved to send emissaries among the Slavs under
+Turkish rule. They met with encouragement in Montenegro, Bulgaria,
+Bosnia, and Herzegovina. General Ignatieff, the Russian ambassador at
+Constantinople, thought that this might be the means to bring about
+the longed-for annexation of the old Czargrad. He worked upon the
+Turkish subjects belonging to the Greek Church, but showed his hand
+when, under his decision, the Bulgarians were <span class="pagenum"><a id="page231" name="page231"></a>(p. 231)</span> released from
+the authority of the Patriarch of Constantinople. In 1875, the
+Bulgarian Christians rose against the Turkish tax-farmers. The revolt
+was fanned by the Russian emissaries, and it spread to Servia and
+Montenegro. Ignatieff did not think that the time was ripe and
+interfered; but he threatened the Sultan with European intervention
+and Abdul Aziz granted the insurgents the privileges enjoyed by the
+Christians in Turkey.</p>
+
+<p>Austria looked with apprehension upon the increasing influence of
+Russia in Turkey, and suggested drastic reforms in a note addressed to
+the powers on December 30, 1875. It was approved and presented to the
+sultan by the five great European powers. Abdul Aziz quietly accepted
+it. This was not what the Russian Slavophils expected, and they
+incited the Servians to revolt. A religious insurrection followed
+which was put down by the Turks with such cruelty that it aroused
+universal indignation in Europe, especially in Russia. In
+Constantinople the Turks were indignant at the sultan's evident fear
+of Ignatieff. The situation became so alarming that Great Britain
+assembled a fleet in Besika Bay. The triple alliance, Russia, Austria
+and Prussia, demanded of the sultan an armistice and the execution of
+reforms under foreign supervision. The situation changed by a
+revolution in Turkey on May 29, 1876, when Abdul Aziz was assassinated
+and succeeded by his nephew Murad V.</p>
+
+<p>Russia felt that war was inevitable and approached Austria with
+proposals to take joint action. The reply was that Austria could not
+permit the creation of a Slav state on the frontier and that, if any
+changes were made in <span class="pagenum"><a id="page232" name="page232"></a>(p. 232)</span> the Balkans, Austria must receive
+compensation. This was admitted by Russia. A number of Russian
+officers took service in Servia, among them General Chernaiev, who had
+gained distinction in Central Asia. Montenegro declared war against
+Turkey on July 2, 1876.</p>
+
+<p>On the 31st of August, of the same year, Sultan Murad V was deposed,
+and his half-brother became sultan as Abdul Hamid II. Meanwhile the
+Turks were victorious, and on September, 17, the Servians asked for an
+armistice.</p>
+
+<p>The reports of Turkish atrocities aroused great indignation in Great
+Britain; its government was forced to join the other great powers in a
+note to the sultan demanding reforms. Abdul Hamid made vague promises
+but when the Servians, trusting to intervention, again took up arms,
+they were badly defeated and a great number of Russian officers were
+killed. The czar was forced to interfere. On October 31, he demanded
+an armistice of six weeks, to which Abdul Hamid replied that he would
+make it six months. This was declined because it would keep the
+Servians too long in suspense, and the war continued. In the beginning
+of November Chernaiev admitted that the Slav cause was lost unless
+foreign help came.</p>
+
+<p>Alexander was really concerned in seeking a peaceable solution, but
+his high officers were equally earnest in preventing it. Ignatieff, at
+Constantinople, was especially active with every means at his
+disposal. Alexander suggested a European conference but before it
+assembled he declared publicly at Moscow (Nov. 10), that, anxious as
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page233" name="page233"></a>(p. 233)</span> he was to avoid the shedding of Russian blood, he would act
+alone to support his brethren in race and religion unless the
+conference brought relief.</p>
+
+<p>The representatives of the powers met at Constantinople on the 5th of
+December, 1876. The sultan, a man of rare ability and cunning, knew
+that Turkey's disintegration was discussed in its own capital. He did
+not object, but made one of the reform party his Grand Vizier, and
+astonished the world by proclaiming a constitution on December 25.</p>
+
+<p>The conference concluded its deliberations, and presented its
+conclusions to the sultan who agreed to submit them to the National
+Assembly, which was to meet in March, 1877. Abdul Hamid was wise. He
+made the first legislature Turkey ever had,&mdash;and he had firmly
+resolved that it should also be the last,&mdash;responsible for whatever
+might happen. The session was brief, but long enough to refuse the
+conditions imposed by the powers.</p>
+
+<p>Alexander demanded that the sultan make peace with Montenegro which
+was declined. On the 24th of April the czar declared war. England
+protested against Russia's independent action, but 250,000 men crossed
+the Turkish frontier. The principal incident was the siege and fall of
+Plevna (July 20&mdash;Dec. 10, 1877), under Osman Pasha. The surrender of
+this brave Turk alarmed England, which, however, did not grant
+Turkey's appeal for intervention. It was at the battle of Senova, Jan.
+9, 1878, when he captured 27,000 prisoners and 43 Krupp guns, that
+Skobelef won fame. On January 23, Constantinople was at the czar's
+mercy.</p>
+
+<p>But <span class="pagenum"><a id="page234" name="page234"></a>(p. 234)</span> this awoke England. On February 13, the British fleet
+passed through the Dardanelles without obtaining the sultan's consent,
+and thereby ruined Russia's schemes. In vain did its government
+complain of the violation of the Treaty of Paris; before the czar
+could make good his threat that he would occupy Constantinople,&mdash;the
+object of the Russian's most fervid hope,&mdash;a fleet of British
+ironclads prevented its consummation.</p>
+
+<p>Peace negotiations were opened at San Stefano, when Russia imposed
+exaggerated demands which the cunning sultan hastened to grant,
+convinced that the other powers would prevent their execution. He was
+right. Great Britain, Austria, and Turkey entered into an alliance.
+England sent for Indian troops to occupy Malta, and called out the
+reserves. The war had cost Russia $600,000,000 and 90,000 men, and she
+was not in a condition to fight the three powers. Thus, for the second
+time, Czargrad slipped out of Russia's clutches, and each time she
+owed the disappointment to Great Britain.</p>
+
+<p>The Balkan question was settled at the Congress at Berlin which opened
+on June 13, 1878, and finished its sessions a month later. Turkey
+ceded to Russia a part of Bessarabia, and in Asia, Kars, Ardahan, and
+Batoum. This ending of the war, so different from what was expected by
+the Slavophils, caused great dissatisfaction in Russia, and the czar
+dissolved all Slavophil committees. This gained him the dislike of the
+high officers and of the tchinovnik.</p>
+
+<p>The absurd and dangerous doctrine of nihilism, that is, the
+destruction of everything that constitutes society, penetrated into
+Russia by way of Germany. At first it was <span class="pagenum"><a id="page235" name="page235"></a>(p. 235)</span> nothing but a
+theory, fascinating for young and inexperienced people such as
+students of the universities who, unless properly guided, are apt to
+adopt any idea that appeals to the generous sentiments of youth. In
+1864, an exile named Bakunin escaped from Siberia, and made his way to
+London where he secured employment on the <i>Kolokol</i> or "Bell," a
+revolutionary paper published in Russia which was smuggled over the
+frontier and scattered broadcast in the czar's domains. Under
+Bakunin's influence this paper became hostile to society, and preached
+nihilism. In 1869, a Congress of Nihilists was held at Basel,
+Switzerland; Bakunin proposed to create an International Committee of
+active workers.</p>
+
+<p>Soon unmistakable signs of trouble appeared in Russia, but the
+government was on the alert and took strong means of suppression.
+Nicholas I, the man with the iron will, had sent an average number of
+9,000 persons annually to Siberia; this number under Alexander the
+Liberator increased to from 16,000 to 20,000. Bakunin urged his
+followers to "go among the people," and a host of young persons, male
+and female, many of them belonging to the wealthy classes, adopted the
+life of the moujik in the villages. But the Russian peasant possesses
+a degree of cunning which shows his dormant intelligence, and
+suspected the motives of those who said they wanted to benefit him,
+and this, added to his real affection for the czar, rendered the
+attempt of the nihilists a failure. The Russian peasant dreads a
+change in his condition, because experience has taught him that it
+will end to his disadvantage. In 1876 there were still 2,000,000
+peasants who preferred serfdom.</p>
+
+<p>The <span class="pagenum"><a id="page236" name="page236"></a>(p. 236)</span> Turkish war, when the government was occupied elsewhere,
+afforded an opportunity which was not neglected by the nihilists. On a
+July night of the year 1877, fifteen young men met in the forest near
+Litepsk, and formed a conspiracy against all existing institutions.
+Two papers, <i>The Popular Will</i> and <i>The Black Partition</i> advised
+assassination as the means to gain their object. We may judge of
+conditions in Russia from knowing that many good and wealthy people
+made contributions, well aware that arrest and punishment would follow
+if the secret police should hear of it. In October, 1877, 253
+nihilists were arrested, and 160 were convicted at the trial. In
+February, 1878, General Trepof, Governor of St. Petersburg was openly
+accused in the papers of gross cruelty toward a prisoner, and Vera
+Zazulich, a young woman, sought to kill him. She was arrested,
+tried,&mdash;and acquitted, much to the disgust of the authorities who made
+every effort to re-arrest her. Then began a reign of terror. Officials
+were condemned to death by an "Executive Committee," composed of
+members whose names were unknown. The police did not know whom to
+suspect, and therefore suspected everybody, and no one was safe. Often
+the condemned officer was warned of his doom by letter or paper, but
+the messenger could not be found. In April, the president of the Kief
+University was dangerously wounded, and a police officer was stabbed
+in public. In August, General Mezensof, Chief of the dreaded Secret
+Police, was killed, and when the government abolished trial by jury in
+favor of a military court, it seemed as if the public took the part of
+the terrorists. These men grew bolder. On the 22d <span class="pagenum"><a id="page237" name="page237"></a>(p. 237)</span> of
+February, 1878, Prince Krapotkine, the Governor of Kharkof, was shot,
+and his death sentence was found posted in many cities. On the
+following 7th of March, Colonel Knoop of the Odessa police, was
+killed, and as a climax, on the 14th of April a school-teacher named
+Solovief fired a pistol at the czar. Not satisfied with assassination,
+the terrorists resorted to incendiarism at Moscow, Nishni Novgorod,
+and other cities, and there were riots at Rostof. In April, 1878, the
+government proclaimed martial law, and the most renowned generals,
+Melikof, Gourko, Todleben, and others were appointed governors with
+unlimited authority. At St. Petersburg the <i>dvorniks</i> or house
+janitors were directed to spy upon the residents and to report their
+movements to the secret police. Executions, imprisonment, and exile
+multiplied until it seemed as if the government wished to terrify the
+terrorists.</p>
+
+<p>Still the situation went from bad to worse. On December 1, 1879, as
+the imperial train was entering Moscow, it was wrecked by a mine.
+Alexander escaped because he had traveled in an earlier section. Three
+days later the "Executive Committee" issued a proclamation excusing
+the attempt and announcing that the czar had been condemned to death.
+On February 17, 1880, an explosion of dynamite in the guard room of
+the Winter Palace, just beneath the imperial dining-room, killed and
+maimed a large number of soldiers, but the imperial family escaped by
+a hair's breadth, as the czar had not entered the room. On the 24th of
+the same month Louis Melikof was placed in charge of the city of St.
+Petersburg, and eight days later there was an attempt upon his life.
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page238" name="page238"></a>(p. 238)</span> There was a panic in the capital, when a nihilist
+proclamation announced that these attempts would cease, provided the
+czar would renounce his autocracy and "leave the task of establishing
+social reforms to an assembly representing the entire Russian people."</p>
+
+<p>Whatever may have been his motive, Melikof urged the czar to try what
+conciliation would effect. Upon his advice, a large number of exiles
+in Siberia were pardoned, and persons imprisoned for political
+offenses were released. About 2,000 students expelled from the
+universities were readmitted, and in several cases the death sentence
+pronounced against nihilists was commuted. Only two men out of the
+sixteen convicted of the attempt to blow up the Winter Palace, were
+executed. The effect of this new policy was so satisfactory, that on
+the 18th of August, 1880, the czar revoked the ukase of February 24,
+and Melikof was appointed as Minister of the Interior. He advised the
+czar to grant a constitution, and in February 1881, placed before
+Alexander a plan to effect this important change gradually. It was
+discussed in the Council of State. The majority approved, but a bitter
+opposition was manifested by the other members. The czar himself was
+in favor of it, but the persons with whom he came into daily contact
+caused him to hesitate. He told Melikof that he would give his final
+decision on March 12.</p>
+
+<p>On that day he had not made up his mind, but on the 13th, he ordered
+that Melikof's scheme should become a law, and that it be published in
+the Official Gazette. That afternoon, as he was returning from his
+usual drive, and his carriage was passing between the Catherine Canal
+and <span class="pagenum"><a id="page239" name="page239"></a>(p. 239)</span> Michael's Garden, a bomb was thrown under his carriage
+and exploded, killing or wounding a number of the guard, but Alexander
+was unhurt. He was hurrying to assist the wounded, when another bomb
+exploded near him and he was dreadfully mangled. He regained
+consciousness for a moment while his attendants were bearing him to
+the palace, but died at 3.30 <span class="smcap">P.M.</span>, without having spoken a word.</p>
+
+<p>A man named Rissakof, said to be a nihilist, was arrested for throwing
+the bomb; but there were ugly rumors that the assassination was
+committed under the direction of parties interested in maintaining an
+autocratic government at all risks. Owing to the secret proceedings in
+Russian courts, the murder of Alexander the Liberator still remains a
+mystery.</p>
+
+
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page240" name="page240"></a>(p. 240)</span>
+<a id="img015" name="img015"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/img015.jpg" width="400" height="595" alt="Alexander III" title="Alexander III">
+</div>
+<p class="figcenter">Alexander III</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XXVI&mdash;ALEXANDER III, THE PEASANTS' FRIEND. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page241" name="page241"></a>(p. 241)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>The atrocious death of The Liberator gave the throne to his son, who
+succeeded as Alexander III. The new czar was thirty-six years old.
+Nicholas, the eldest son of Alexander II, had died of consumption in
+1865, and, since he had been the heir, his younger brother had not
+received any special training. His principal tutor had been
+Pobiédonostzeff, a man who believed in autocracy. He had imbued his
+pupil with a deeply religious feeling, and imparted to him a thorough
+knowledge of Russia's history. Alexander III was of powerful build and
+possessed unusual strength. He was loyal to his word, and tenacious in
+his likes and dislikes. Married to Princess Dagmar of Denmark, he was
+a model husband and father. His education made him a firm believer in
+autocracy.</p>
+
+<p>The sudden and tragic death of his father moved him so deeply that he
+gave orders that the last wishes of the late czar should be respected.
+"Change nothing in my father's orders;" he said to Melikof; "they are
+his last will and testament." He issued two proclamations; in the
+first he announced that he would strengthen the bond with Poland and
+Finland, and thus gained the support of the Slavophils; and in the
+second, he reminded the peasants of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page242" name="page242"></a>(p. 242)</span> the freedom given to
+them by his father, and ordered them to swear allegiance to himself
+and his heir. Six men and a woman implicated in the murder of the late
+czar were arrested, tried, condemned to death, and, with the exception
+of the woman, they were executed on April 15. The czar appointed his
+former tutor as Procurator of the Holy Synod. Pobiédonostzeff
+persuaded his pupil that this was not the time to make concessions. On
+the 11th of May, 1881, Alexander issued a proclamation in which he
+declared his intention to maintain the absolute power. Melikof
+resigned as Minister of the Interior and was replaced by Ignatieff,
+the former Russian Minister at Constantinople.</p>
+
+<p>Shortly after his succession to the throne, Alexander made a journey
+to Moscow, and was everywhere received with unmistakable tokens of
+loyalty and affection. This confirmed his opinion that the great bulk
+of the population was satisfied with the form of government, and
+strengthened his determination to defend it.</p>
+
+<p>In 1881, an anti-semitic movement was felt in Germany; that is, an
+outburst of hatred for the Jews broke out, which spread to Russia. It
+is not generally known that of all the Jews in the world, four fifths
+live in Russia in the southwest, in an area of 356,681 square miles.
+This is sometimes mentioned as the Jewish territory. Few of these
+people engage in agriculture; they are sometimes mechanics, but more
+often peddlers, storekeepers, bankers and moneylenders. The principal
+objection to them was that they succeed where others fail. In May,
+1881, there were anti-Jewish riots at Kief and other places.
+Pobiédonostzeff's motto was, "One Russia, One <span class="pagenum"><a id="page243" name="page243"></a>(p. 243)</span> Religion, One
+Czar;" prompted by him, Alexander did not take any energetic measures
+to suppress the disorder, for he, too, disliked to see in Russia a
+people differing in religion, language, and outward appearance.
+Ignatieff began a system of persecution by removing the Jews who had
+profited by the late czar's permission to settle anywhere, and when
+the act which recalled the Middle Ages was hotly condemned by the
+foreign press, even the Slavophils said that Ignatieff had gone too
+far. The persecution died out until 1884, when the Jews were deprived
+of their civil rights, and an attempt was made to compel them to enter
+the Greek Church. But the Jew is steadfast under persecution, and the
+only result was that some of them heartily joined the nihilists.</p>
+
+<p>The public condemnation which followed these acts, induced Ignatieff
+to advise the czar to adopt Melikof's scheme of a constitution.
+Alexander did not understand this change of views and when de Giers
+was appointed Minister of Foreign Affairs, Ignatieff resigned. He was
+succeeded by D. Tolstoï.</p>
+
+<p>Misunderstandings and the clashing of interests were dissolving the
+triple alliance of Russia, Austria, and Germany. This was apparent in
+the Balkan States which had been formed after the last Russo-Turkish
+war. Charles I, King of Roumania, was a German prince who mistrusted
+Russia's schemes. In March, 1882, Prince Milan Obrenovitch of Servia
+assumed the title of king, and the czar offered no objection. The
+ruler of Bulgaria was Alexander of Battenberg who was a relative of
+the czar and had served in the Russian army, which may have been the
+reason of his appointment. The Russian Minister <span class="pagenum"><a id="page244" name="page244"></a>(p. 244)</span> at his court
+was evidently of the opinion that his word, as representative of the
+czar, was law, and when he found out that his orders were set at
+naught, he withdrew from his post, whereupon the Russian officers
+serving in the Bulgarian army, were dismissed. This gave grave offense
+at St. Petersburg, but the affair was arranged, and the Russian
+Minister returned. In September, 1885, there was a revolution in
+Sofia, the capital of Eastern Roumelia, when the crown was offered to
+Alexander of Battenberg, who accepted. He hastened to inform the czar,
+who was too angry to pay any attention to letters or telegrams.</p>
+
+<p>Bulgaria and Eastern Roumelia, although united under one prince, sent
+deputations to St. Petersburg to appease the czar, but were informed
+that their future would be decided by the great powers. Soon after
+Servia declared war against Bulgaria; after a few unimportant
+skirmishes, they were driven back by Prince Alexander, who would have
+captured the capital Belgrad, if he had not been stopped by Austria's
+intervention. Alexander, after another fruitless attempt to mollify
+the czar, applied to the sultan, who appointed him as Governor-general
+over Eastern Roumelia for five years. The czar protested and invited
+the powers to a conference which was held at Constantinople on April
+5, 1886. To the infinite disgust of the czar, the dispute was decided
+in favor of Prince Alexander.</p>
+
+<p>Russia, however, had a pro-Russian party in Bulgaria. On August 21,
+1886, Prince Alexander was kidnaped and carried across the Danube,
+after being compelled to abdicate. At Lemberg, in Austrian territory
+he was set free. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page245" name="page245"></a>(p. 245)</span> The Bulgarians rallied under the President
+of the National Assembly and forced the pro-Russians to flee, after
+which Prince Alexander returned on the 3d of September. Once more he
+made an attempt to pacify the czar, but when his telegram remained
+unanswered, he abdicated three days later, rather than involve the
+country in a war with Russia. He left on the same day, to the sorrow
+of the people.</p>
+
+<p>The czar was angry. He knew that Austria would not have dared oppose
+him unless assured of the support of Germany. The feeling in Russia
+grew more bitter when the election in Bulgaria showed a total defeat
+of the pro-Russian party, and the crown was offered to Prince Waldemar
+of Denmark, who declined at the instance of the czar. The Bulgarians
+then made an offer to Prince Ferdinand of Saxe-Coburg, who accepted,
+and in August made his formal entry in Tirnova. Alexander once more
+protested to the powers, but it passed unheeded and he urged the
+sultan to expel Ferdinand. Abdul Hamid declined with thanks,
+preferring to have as neighbor a small independent country to Russia.
+Alexander then demanded payment of the war indemnity due since the
+Treaty of San Stefano, but could obtain nothing except a profusion of
+excuses and apologies. Soon after the sultan had trouble in Armenia,
+which was Russia's latest resort to arouse public opinion against the
+Turk.</p>
+
+<p>This is the age of colossal enterprises and combinations in every
+direction, in politics as well as in other branches of human activity.
+In Russia Slavophilism, gave way to Panslavism, that is, the scheme to
+unite all Slav <span class="pagenum"><a id="page246" name="page246"></a>(p. 246)</span> nations. Germany was quick to respond with
+Pan Germanism, that is, to bring all German-speaking nations under one
+scepter. The czar, obeying this impulse, made every effort to convert
+the Baltic provinces,&mdash;which Germany called the German
+Provinces,&mdash;into Slavs by making the Russian language the only
+language that was taught in the schools; and Germany retaliated in the
+Polish provinces. Under these circumstances friendship ceased. Russia
+established a protective tariff, which was a rude blow to Germany's
+commerce; and that country replied by refusing to loan Russia any more
+money. The czar's government applied to France which responded with
+unexpected generosity. From that time Russia's internal improvements
+have been made with French capital.</p>
+
+<p>Prudent as he was, Alexander allowed his anger and dislike to master
+him, when Prince Alexander of Battenberg was accepted as suitor to a
+daughter of Queen Victoria. Troops were hurried from the Caucasus into
+Poland, but Germany averted war by having the match broken off. When
+the present German emperor, William II, succeeded to the throne, he
+attempted to make friends with the czar by dismissing Prince Bismarck,
+in 1890, but Alexander could neither forgive nor forget. It was
+chiefly owing to this that Russia and France drew closer together
+until it ended in an alliance.</p>
+
+<p>Strong, self-willed, and masterful, Alexander did love his people in
+his own way. In January, 1884, he ordered the poll-tax to be
+abolished, and thereby relieved the peasants of a heavy burden; he
+also compelled the landowners to sell to their former serfs the land
+cultivated by <span class="pagenum"><a id="page247" name="page247"></a>(p. 247)</span> them. Since the price was payable in
+installments and the owners needed the money, the government assumed
+the position of creditor, but Alexander reduced the total indebtedness
+by 12,000,000 rubles, and granted 5,000,000 rubles for the relief of
+overburdened villages. He calculated that the land would be paid for
+in 1930, when the title will be vested in the mir,&mdash;unless one of his
+successors should please to appropriate the past payments for other
+purposes.</p>
+
+<p>In the black earth belt the allotments had been according to the needs
+of the population, but the increase among the people rendered them too
+small and several severe famines followed. The government tried to
+induce the surplus population to emigrate to Siberia, but the Russian
+peasant lacks education and has been held in tutelage so long that he
+is not fit for the life of a pioneer settler. Transportation
+facilities increased by the aid of French capital, and added to the
+prosperity of merchants and speculators, but did not help the moujik
+who did not know how to profit by them.</p>
+
+<p>Alexander, as autocrat of all the Russias, did not suffer any
+authority but his own. The zemstvos, volosts, and mirs, were all
+placed under officials appointed by him. Every shadow of
+self-government was destroyed. This demanded a reorganization of the
+army, which was increased by 900,000 men. The reserves were called out
+once a year, and drilled as in actual war. Strategic railways were
+built for the speedy transportation of troops. Coast defenses were
+constructed and the navy was increased. In 1884, Batoum was closed as
+a port and converted into a naval base, and when England protested,
+claiming <span class="pagenum"><a id="page248" name="page248"></a>(p. 248)</span> that this was in violation of the Treaty of
+Berlin,&mdash;as it was,&mdash;Russia, referring to the changes in the Balkan,
+inquired if the duty of observing the treaties was reserved
+exclusively for Russia.</p>
+
+<p>Alexander's reign was especially discouraging for the Poles who still
+hoped for the revival of their country. Poles were made into Russians;
+but Panslavism demanded that the German should be banished. In 1887,
+Alexander ordered that, when a foreign landowner in Poland died, his
+estate must be sold unless his heirs had been residents of Poland
+before this order was published. Germany, suffering from
+Pan-Germanism, collected several thousand Russian Poles who had
+settled in Germany, and put them across the frontier. Russia replied
+by making a law in the Baltic provinces that nothing but Russian could
+be taught in any school, and that no more Lutheran churches could be
+built without the permission of the Holy Synod.</p>
+
+<p>Then came Finland's turn. In 1890, Russian money, Russian stamps, and
+worse than that, Russian taxes were introduced. There were loud
+protests, which received courteous answers, but the process continued.
+In 1891, the Finnish Committee at St. Petersburg, which had directed
+the affairs of Finland, was abolished, and Russian censorship
+abolished the free press. The Russian language was made obligatory,
+and the Finns who could afford it emigrated to the United States and
+settled in the northwest.</p>
+
+<p>In 1890, Alexander ordered the construction of the Trans-Siberian
+railway, of which more will be said in the chapter on Asiatic Russia.</p>
+
+
+<p>All <span class="pagenum"><a id="page249" name="page249"></a>(p. 249)</span> these years Alexander had battled with nihilism and
+revolution. His policy neither gave nor asked for quarter. In May,
+1888, an army officer named Timovief made an attempt upon the czar's
+life. On October 29th of the same year, as he was traveling in
+southern Russia an accident occurred in which twenty-one were killed
+and many injured; it was ascribed to nihilists, but may have been
+caused by defects. Be that as it may, Alexander never recovered from
+the shock. In March, 1890, another plot against his life was
+discovered. In November, 1891, the secret police came on the scent of
+a conspiracy at Moscow, and in April, 1894, they learned of one at St.
+Petersburg. In constant fear of assassination, Alexander resided at
+Gatschina, twenty-five miles south of St. Petersburg, as in an armed
+fortress. The never-ceasing tension wore out the strong man. He caught
+cold and suffering from inflammation of the kidneys he went south, but
+experienced no relief. He died on the 1st of November, 1894.</p>
+
+<p>In his private life he was essentially a good man; as czar, he acted
+according to his convictions. He gave much thought to the welfare of
+the peasants and as such deserved the surname of The Peasants' Friend.</p>
+
+
+
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page250" name="page250"></a>(p. 250)</span>
+<a id="img016" name="img016"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/img016.jpg" width="400" height="593" alt="Nicholas II" title="Nicholas II">
+</div>
+<p class="figcenter">Nicholas II</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h3>XXVII&mdash;RUSSIA UNDER THE PRESENT CZAR. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page251" name="page251"></a>(p. 251)</span></h3>
+
+<h5>NICHOLAS II.</h5>
+
+
+<p>"Neglect nothing that can make my son truly a man!" This was the
+instruction given by Alexander to the tutors of his son. Consequently,
+Nicholas in his youth was allowed to indulge in manly exercises and
+sports, while special tutors taught him mathematics, natural
+philosophy, history, political economy, English, French, and German,
+besides his native language. Destined for the throne, he began his
+military career at the age of thirteen as hetman of the Cossacks, and
+passed successively through the different grades. In 1889, at the age
+of twenty-one, he was appointed president of a committee to prepare
+plans for the Trans-Siberian railway, and the following year he made a
+tour in the Far East, visiting China and Japan. In the last-named
+country he was attacked and wounded by a police officer who had been
+brooding over the wrongs which his country had suffered at the hands
+of Russia. Nicholas recovered and proceeded to Vladivostok, where he
+initiated the building of the great continental line. He returned to
+St. Petersburg by way of Siberia and Moscow, and was the first czar
+who had ever visited his Asiatic empire.</p>
+
+<p>Born on May 18, 1868, he was twenty-six years old when <span class="pagenum"><a id="page252" name="page252"></a>(p. 252)</span> he
+was called to the throne. He announced that he would "promote the
+progress and peaceful glory of our beloved Russia, and the happiness
+of all our faithful subjects." On the 26th of November, 1894, the czar
+married Princess Alice of Hesse-Darmstadt, the granddaughter of Queen
+Victoria, who, on entering the Greek Church, received the name of
+Alexandra Feodorofna. The czar retained his father's ministers, except
+that Prince Khilkof, who had learned practical railroading in the
+United States, was appointed Minister of Public Works. Pobiédonostzeff
+continued as Procurator of the Holy Synod.</p>
+
+<p>Nicholas showed greater leniency toward Poland and Finland than his
+father had done. He revoked several of his father's ukases and seemed
+to be willing to treat them fairly. Finland's forests are a source of
+great prosperity and the Russian officials have long been anxious to
+secure a share. When the Secretary of State for Finland resigned,
+General Kuropatkin became Minister of War, and he wished to introduce
+Russia's military system. General Bobrikof, a brusque and haughty man,
+was appointed Governor-general with instructions to proceed with the
+conversion of the Finns into Slavs. He convoked an extraordinary
+session of the Diet, January 24, 1899, and submitted Kuropatkin's
+scheme, with a strong hint that it must pass. The Diet ignored the
+hint and rejected the scheme, whereupon Bobrikof ignored the Diet and
+published it as a law to go into effect in 1903. An imperial ukase of
+February 15, 1899, reorganized the Diet according to a plan drawn up
+by Pobiédonostzeff. Bobrikof increased the rigor of the press
+censorship, but <span class="pagenum"><a id="page253" name="page253"></a>(p. 253)</span> the Finns remained within the law. A
+petition was circulated which in ten days secured 500,000 signatures,
+and a delegation was sent to St. Petersburg to present it. The
+delegation was not admitted.</p>
+
+<p>In January, 1895, the czar received a deputation of all classes of his
+subjects who hinted that the zemstvos might be used as the germ of a
+constitutional government. He replied that he believed in autocracy
+and that he intended to maintain it as his predecessors had done. On
+the 26th of May, 1896, he was crowned at Moscow with more than usual
+splendor, and in the same year he and the czarina made a tour through
+Europe. After visiting the German Emperor and Queen Victoria, they
+went to Paris where the czar, after reviewing 100,000 soldiers
+declared that the Empire and the Republic were united in indissoluble
+friendship. The visit was returned by the President of the French
+Republic, M. Faure, in August, 1897. On this occasion the world
+received notice that an alliance existed between the two powers, and
+that, if one of them was attacked by more than one power, the other
+would assist with the whole of its military and naval strength, and
+peace could be concluded only in concert between the allies.</p>
+
+<p>Two great reforms are noticeable under the present reign. The sale of
+spirits has greatly decreased since the government took the monopoly
+of the manufacture and sale of liquor. The French loans made the
+establishment of the gold standard possible and speculation in Russian
+paper money ceased.</p>
+
+<p>The completion of the Trans-Siberian Railway aroused great expectation
+for the future of Russia's commerce. The <span class="pagenum"><a id="page254" name="page254"></a>(p. 254)</span> war with Japan has
+prevented the possibility of estimating the effect it will have upon
+oceanic trade. But Russia's manufactures have had a wonderful
+increase; its effect is shown in the population of the cities. In
+1870, Russia contained only six cities with a population of over
+100,000; their number was doubled in 1897. Warsaw, the old capital of
+Poland, had 243,000 inhabitants in 1865; in 1897, they had increased
+to 615,000. Lotz, also in Poland, rose from 12,000 to 315,000. This
+cannot fail to exert a powerful influence upon the future of the
+empire; first, on account of the creation of a middle class which,
+even at this early day, numbers nine per cent of the population; and
+next, because the mechanics and factory hands are recruited from among
+the peasants, who thus are brought into daily contact with more
+intelligent people, and acquire new ideas and new necessities. The
+official class is bitterly opposed to this new departure, because it
+foreshadows the day when the drag upon Russia will be cast off.</p>
+
+<p>Nicholas seems to have reversed his father's policy in the Balkan
+States. He also acted in concert with Europe in 1896, when trouble
+arose between Turkey and Greece. It began in Crete, where Turk and
+Christian could not agree. Stories of massacres infuriated the Greeks
+and the king had to choose between a revolution and a declaration of
+war. In April, 1897, an army of 80,000 men under Prince George crossed
+into Thessaly, but was driven back by a Turkish army of 150,000 men.
+Prince George had invaded Crete in February, but the powers compelled
+him to evacuate the island. The czar interceded with the sultan, and
+the absurd war was ended.</p>
+
+<p>The <span class="pagenum"><a id="page255" name="page255"></a>(p. 255)</span> Slavophils, after their failure in the Balkan provinces
+had excited the Armenians in the provinces near the Russian Caucasus.
+They attacked the Kurds, a nomadic tribe of Mussulmans, when the Turks
+took the side of their co-religionists and treated the Armenians with
+no soft hand. The Panslavists demanded autonomy for Armenia, but this
+did not suit Prince Lobanof, who had succeeded de Giers as Minister of
+Foreign Affairs, because he feared trouble in the Caucasus. In 1895,
+Russia, France, and England, presented a note to the sultan,
+suggesting the appointment of a high commissioner, the abolition of
+torture, and reforms in taxation. Turkey agreed, but Shakir Pasha, the
+high commissioner, failed to restore order and the disorder threatened
+to become a revolt. Even in Constantinople a condition of anarchy
+prevailed.</p>
+
+<p>The atrocities committed by the Turks aroused indignation everywhere,
+when the Armenians seized the Ottoman Bank, but the conspirators were
+forced to flee from the building and to seek refuge on an English
+yacht. The Turks were furious and killed more than 5,000 Armenians.
+Again the powers remonstrated; but at this time it began to dawn upon
+the public that the Armenians were a least quite as much to blame as
+the Turks, and the interest subsided. Russia had discovered that the
+Armenians are undesirable citizens, and sent back some 40,000 of them
+who had settled in the Russian Caucasus. Germany, intent upon securing
+concessions from Turkey, left the sultan a free hand; meanwhile the
+British public was engrossed by the Boer war, and the Armenians,
+seeing that they were left to their own devices, subsided.</p>
+
+<p>The <span class="pagenum"><a id="page256" name="page256"></a>(p. 256)</span> civilized world was startled when, on August 24, 1898,
+Russia issued a note to the powers, declaring that "military and naval
+budgets attack public prosperity at its very source, and divert
+national energies from useful aims," and suggesting a conference to
+discuss the subject of displacing war by an International Court.</p>
+
+<p>The note received generous applause, especially in the United States
+and Great Britain, the two foremost nations devoted to the arts of
+peace. The several governments agreed to participate in the proposed
+conference. The place selected was The Hague, the capital of the
+Netherlands, where the sessions opened on May 18, 1899.</p>
+
+<p>Of all the great powers, the United States was the only one
+unreservedly in favor of an arrangement whereby war would be
+prevented. Most of the other powers looked upon an International Court
+as visionary, and so far as the ostensible purpose is concerned, the
+conference was a failure. Still, it bore fruit in defining and adding
+strength to international law. Among its most important results is the
+clause that "When a conflict seems imminent, one or several powers
+shall have the right to offer mediation, and its exercise shall not be
+regarded as an unfriendly act." A permanent Court of Arbitration was
+established at The Hague. It is composed of judges selected from a
+list on which every country is represented. On the 29th of July, the
+delegates of sixteen nations signed the protocol embodying the
+conclusions; it was afterwards signed by sixteen more. It remained,
+however, with the United States, to give vitality to an institution
+which was looked upon with ill favor by many governments.</p>
+
+<p>Although <span class="pagenum"><a id="page257" name="page257"></a>(p. 257)</span> the reign of terror from the nihilists has passed,
+political murder is still rampant in Russia, and recent events in the
+Far East have caused a renewal of the agitation for reforms. In 1904,
+the Governor-general of Finland was assassinated, and soon afterwards,
+the hated and dreaded Minister of the Interior de Plehve shared that
+fate. His successor seems to be anxious to grant greater liberties to
+the people. The united action of the zemstvos, and the final issue of
+the war in the Far East, may have important results. Nicholas II, amid
+all his perplexities, was made glad by the birth of a son and heir,
+who received the name of Alexis.</p>
+
+
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page258" name="page258"></a>(p. 258)</span>
+<a id="img017" name="img017"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<a href="images/img017bg.jpg">
+<img src="images/img017.jpg" width="500" height="313" alt="Map" title="Map"></a>
+</div>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XXVIII&mdash;THE ORIGIN AND GROWTH OF THE ASIATIC EMPIRE. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page259" name="page259"></a>(p. 259)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>A close study of the history of Asiatic Russia reveals the fact that,
+until within a comparatively recent date, the Russian government had
+no fixed policy in or toward Asia. There was a national instinct which
+impelled Russia eastward. Twice had Europe been invaded by Asiatic
+hordes, and, owing to its position, Russia was doomed to bear the
+brunt of the onset. Russia's history points out a ceaseless desire to
+be a European nation, to share with Europe its progress and its
+burdens. It is within a few years that the heir to the throne first
+visited the extensive Asiatic dominions. No czar had ever put foot in
+them. Until the reign of Nicholas I (1825-1855), the Russian Empire
+spread eastward much as the United States expanded westward, by
+individual effort.</p>
+
+<p>The movement began in 1558, when Ivan the Terrible granted to Gregory
+Strogonof ninety-two miles of waste land on the banks of the Kama. The
+new owner explored the mineral resources of the Urals, crossed the
+mountains, and found himself in the kingdom of Sibir. Strogonof had
+become acquainted with one Yermak or Irmak, a Cossack and captain of a
+robber band known as the Good Companions of the Don. He had <span class="pagenum"><a id="page260" name="page260"></a>(p. 260)</span>
+been condemned to death, if the government could lay hands on him,
+which, on account of the sparsity of the population, was exceedingly
+doubtful. Strogonof discussed with him a raid into Sibir, and the
+Cossack consented, provided his pardon could be secured. Strogonof
+went to Moscow and submitted his scheme to Ivan who gave his approval.
+Upon his return to the Urals, Strogonof found that he had 850 men,
+Russians, Cossacks, Tartars, and German and Polish prisoners of war,
+all hardy adventurers. They marched east terrifying the natives with
+their firelocks, and levying tribute, that is, taking whatever was
+worth the trouble. They defeated the khan, and took his capital,
+Sibir, on the Irtish. Yermak then visited Moscow, where he was the
+hero of the day. Had he not struck at the very heart of the mysterious
+continent whence so much trouble and disgrace had come upon Russia?
+And had he not exacted tribute from the very people who not very long
+ago held Russia under tribute.</p>
+
+<p>Yermak was therefore praised and entertained and graciously told to go
+ahead, Ivan had neither men nor money to spare, but he was quite
+willing that these adventurers should despoil the Asiatics, instead of
+holding up Russian travelers and traders. Ivan gave him a suit of
+armor as a token of good will. After Yermak's return to Siberia, he
+was surprised by the natives and drowned by the weight of his armor as
+he was trying to escape by swimming the Irtish. (1584.) Other Cossacks
+had heard of his success and followed his example. In 1587, Tobolsk
+was founded on the Irtish, ten miles below Sibir.</p>
+
+<p>There <span class="pagenum"><a id="page261" name="page261"></a>(p. 261)</span> was little or no communication between Siberia and
+Moscow, owing to the distance separating them, and the successors of
+Ivan had ample trouble on their hands. It was, therefore, left to the
+Cossacks to make such explorations and conquests as they could. In
+1619, Tomsk was founded. Farther and farther did the Cossacks advance
+among the isolated tribes. In 1632, a log fort was built where
+Yakoutsk now stands, and six years later they gazed upon the broad
+waters of the Pacific and planted the czar's flag on the shore of the
+Sea of Okhotsk.</p>
+
+<p>It was a congenial occupation for the Cossack, to roam where he
+pleased and to take what suited his fancy, and he did not lack either
+the skill or the courage needed by the explorer. In 1639, a party of
+Cossacks under Max Perfirief, discovered the Upper Amoor, and heard
+tales of such vast wealth that they hastened to Yakoutsk and placed
+their discovery before Peter Petrovitch, the first Russian Governor.</p>
+
+<p>Men and money were scarce, but the governor, after many efforts
+managed to collect 132 men whom he placed in command of Vassili
+Poyarkof, with instructions to do the best he could. The party started
+on the 15th of July, 1643, and followed the usual course with the
+natives with the result that he returned to Yakoutsk in June 1646,
+having lost most of his men in attacks by infuriated and outraged
+natives, but in possession of a fund of information, and some skins as
+tribute.</p>
+
+<p>During the reign of Alexis Michaelovitch (1645-1676), explorations of
+the Amoor regions were pursued vigorously. A young officer of
+considerable wealth, named <span class="pagenum"><a id="page262" name="page262"></a>(p. 262)</span> Khabarof, offered to conduct an
+expedition at his own expense. This was gladly accepted, and he left
+Yakoutsk in 1649. He reached the Amoor and formed a line of forts, and
+met a small party among whom was the khan, who asked what his object
+was. Khabarof replied that he had come to trade, but that the czar
+would probably take the khan under his powerful protection in return
+for a small annual tribute. The khan did not answer, and Khabarof
+after burning most of the forts and leaving some of his men in
+another, returned to Yakoutsk to report.</p>
+
+<p>In June, 1651, he was on the way back to the Amoor, where he came in
+conflict with the Manchus. He, however, forced his way, and gained for
+the Russians the reputation that they were "devils, who would make
+gridirons of the parents to roast the children on." At this time a
+report that the Amoor region contained untold wealth reached Moscow,
+where it produced an effect very similar to that felt in Spain after
+the return of Columbus.</p>
+
+<p>Alexis intended to send an expedition of 3,000 men to occupy and hold
+this treasure grove, but he was prudent enough to dispatch an officer
+to order Khabarof to Moscow, so that he might learn the facts. This
+officer, Simovief left Moscow in March, 1652, and met Khabarof in
+August of the following year. Leaving the command to his lieutenant
+Stepanof, Khabarof obeyed the czar's call. He arrived at Moscow and
+after the czar had heard his report, the expedition was given up, but
+Alexis wrote to Stepanof, upon whom he conferred some honors, and told
+him to continue the good work.</p>
+
+<p>The interest manifested by the czar inaugurated an exploration
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page263" name="page263"></a>(p. 263)</span> fever among the Russian authorities. Pashkof, the Governor of
+Yeniseisk started on the 18th of July, 1656, for the Amoor at the head
+of 400 Cossacks; in 1658, he built a fort which was the beginning of
+Nerchinsk. It was 1662 before he returned to Yeniseisk.</p>
+
+<p>Unfortunately the Russians came into a clash with the Manchus, at that
+time in full vigor; they had made themselves masters of China, and
+their emperor, Kang-hi, was an exceptionably able and strong man. He
+did not want war, but on the other hand he did not intend to suffer an
+injustice.</p>
+
+<p>When the government at Moscow became aware that further encroachment
+would entail a war with China an ambassador, Feodor Golovin, was
+dispatched to come to an understanding. He left Moscow on January 20,
+1686, but took his time. Kang-hi had been notified, and ambassadors
+were sent from Peking to meet Golovin. The Russian met the Chinese at
+Nerchinsk on the 22d August, 1689, and on the 27th the terms of a
+treaty were agreed upon. Two days later the treaty was exchanged.
+Russia was compelled to withdraw from the Amoor. After this no changes
+in the boundary line occurred until after the year 1847.</p>
+
+<p>In 1707, Kamtschatka was annexed to Russia, and two years later the
+first prisoners were sent to Siberia. They were prisoners of war and
+natives of conquered European provinces who objected to Muscovite
+rule. About 14,000 persons were sent the first year, but many died
+from the hardships suffered on the road.</p>
+
+<p>Besides Siberia, Russia in Asia consists of:</p>
+
+<p>I. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page264" name="page264"></a>(p. 264)</span> The Caucasus. It was Peter the Great who, in 1722, invaded
+Dagestan and seized the greater part of this territory. We have seen
+how the mountaineers defended their liberty under Schamyl,<a id="footnotetag11" name="footnotetag11"></a><a href="#footnote11">[11]</a> and it
+was left to his son Alexander to annex it and make it part of the
+Russian Empire. Including Trans Caucasia, it covers an area of 180,843
+square miles,&mdash;or about that of Colorado and Utah, and contains a
+population of 8,350,000.</p>
+
+<p>II. The Kirghiz Steppe. This is a country of plains, unfit for
+agriculture and still inhabited by nomads who live in tents and wander
+with their flocks over the 755,793 square miles of territory. They are
+divided into three hordes or families, one of which surrendered to
+Anne Ivanovna in 1734. In 1869 the Kirghiz, together with the Cossacks
+of the Don, revolted, but in the autumn of 1870, order was restored.
+For administrative purposes, it is divided into:</p>
+
+<p>III. Transcaspia, which, as the name indicates, includes the region
+east of the Caspian Sea. It contains an area of 383,618 square miles
+with a population estimated at 352,000. Like the Kirghiz Steppe, it is
+unfit for agriculture, although it contains several oases. It was
+formed into a province by Alexander III. in 1881.</p>
+
+<p>IV. Turkestan contains 409,414 square miles with a population of
+3,341,000. The valleys of the Oxus and Jaxartes are very fertile, but
+the rest of the extensive province is almost a desert. The Oxus or Amu
+Daria once formed the boundary of the empires of Cyrus and Alexander.
+It was conquered step by step, and after many <span class="pagenum"><a id="page265" name="page265"></a>(p. 265)</span> struggles with
+the Turkomans and Kirghiz to whom it originally belonged.</p>
+
+<p>V. The Khanates, so called because they once formed the territory of
+the Khans of Khiva and Bokhara. This province embraces 114,320 square
+miles with a population of 3,200,000. Both are recent acquisitions. It
+was the war with Khiva, in 1872, which first drew the attention of
+Europe to Russia's expansion in Central Asia. There had been some
+doubts as to the wisdom of permitting Russia to add more territory to
+her already enormous domain, but they had been allayed by a circular
+note to the powers, issued by Prince Gortchakof, the Minister of
+Foreign Affairs, on November 21, 1864. He declared that Russia had
+been brought into contact with a number of half-savage tribes who
+proved a constant menace to the security of the Empire, and that the
+only means of maintaining order on the frontier, was to bring them
+under submission. This, he said, had been done by the United States,
+and was nothing but a measure necessary for self-defense.</p>
+
+<p>This reasoning was self-evident, but in 1873 the press of Great
+Britain asked when and where this necessity would cease. Count
+Schouvalof was sent to London and in several interviews with Lord
+Granville, he stated distinctly and plainly that Russia had no
+intention to annex any more territory in Central Asia. He declared<a id="footnotetag12" name="footnotetag12"></a><a href="#footnote12">[12]</a>
+solemnly with regard to Khiva that "not only was it far from the
+intention of the emperor to take possession of Khiva, but positive
+orders had been prepared to <span class="pagenum"><a id="page266" name="page266"></a>(p. 266)</span> prevent it, and directions given
+that the conditions imposed should be such as would not in any way
+lead to the prolonged occupation of Khiva."</p>
+
+<p>Notwithstanding this positive declaration, Khiva was annexed on the
+10th of June, 1873. Four months afterwards, on the 10th of October, a
+treaty was signed by the Khan of Bokhara, giving to Russia free
+navigation on the Oxus, and other privileges. It has never been
+formally annexed, but is to all intents and purposes Russian
+territory.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XXIX&mdash;RUSSIAN METHODS. THE WAR WITH JAPAN. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page267" name="page267"></a>(p. 267)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>At the time when the United States and the commercial powers of Europe
+were discussing the opening of Japan, Russia resolved, if possible, to
+forestall them. In 1847, the czar appointed a young general, Nicholas
+Muravieff, as governor of Eastern Siberia. Shortly after entering upon
+his office he sent an officer named Vagarof, who had explored the
+Amoor River, back to it with four Cossacks to make an extensive
+report. The party left Strelka in the spring of 1848, but was never
+heard of again. Suspecting that they had been captured by the Chinese,
+a demand was made for their surrender on the plea that they were
+deserters, but the Chinese replied that they knew nothing of them.
+Meanwhile Muravieff had ordered the exploration of the shore of the
+Sea of Okhotsk and the mouth of the Amoor. These orders were promptly
+executed, and in 1850 Lieutenant Orloff entered the river from the
+sea. The following year Captain Nevilskoï, who had come out in the
+<i>Baikal</i>, sent a boat up the river and laid the foundations of
+Nikolayefsk and Mariinsk, thereby securing a foothold on the Lower
+Amoor, knowing all the time that this was Chinese territory, and that
+Russia was at peace with China. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page269" name="page269"></a>(p. 269)</span> The survey of the Sea of
+Okhotsk was not neglected. Port Imperial on the coast of Manchuria was
+discovered and occupied, and Urup, one of the Kurile Islands, was
+seized. When Commodore Perry arrived off the coast of Japan, he was
+watched by Admiral Poutiatine in command of the <i>Pallas</i>, <i>Vostok</i>,
+<i>Olivutzu</i> and <i>Menzikoff</i>. Aniwa Bay was seized the same year, and
+Russians landed on the west coast of what is known as Saghalien, but
+was known and owned by the Japanese under the name of Karafuto.</p>
+
+<a id="img018" name="img018"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/img018.jpg" width="500" height="318" alt="Village Scene" title="Village Scene">
+</div>
+<p class="figcenter">Village Scene</p>
+
+<p>The Crimean War gave Muravieff a pretext to violate farther the treaty
+with China. He claimed that the settlements on the Pacific, as well as
+the Russian ships, were in need of supplies, and that the ocean route
+was closed by the allied fleets. Was it Muravieff's duty to furnish
+those supplies? In that case, any reference to the ocean route was
+preposterous, because it is absurd to suppose that supplies would be
+sent from Eastern Siberia to the north Pacific coast by such a route;
+and if he had furnished them before by the overland route through
+Siberia, why, that road was open to him. What he needed was a pretext
+to secure the occupation of Japan, or at least of some of its islands,
+before the other powers could know of it; and for that purpose, it was
+necessary to be in possession of the lower Amoor. Perry's energetic
+action thwarted him; but he could not know that. What he did know was
+that China was not in a condition to oppose him, and that the other
+powers need not know what he was doing.</p>
+
+<p>He determined to send an expedition strong enough to insure respect,
+and lost no time in preparing it. Fifty barges, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page270" name="page270"></a>(p. 270)</span> a steamer,
+and numerous rafts, a thousand Cossacks with cannon, the whole
+commanded by Muravieff himself, left Shilkinsk on the 24th of May,
+1854. Following the usual custom, the expedition was accompanied by
+scientific men to survey the river, prepare maps, explore the country,
+and examine its resources. At ten <span class="smcap">A.M.</span>, June 8, they arrived at Aigun
+where Muravieff was received by the Chinese authorities, who displayed
+about the same number of armed men, but such men and such arms!
+Firelocks dating from the time of Kang-hi&mdash;1689,&mdash;convinced Muravieff
+that fifty Cossacks could put these braves to rout. Not caring to
+arouse Chinese hostility for fear that his schemes might attract
+attention, Muravieff did not resent it when the Chinese forbade him to
+enter the town; he continued on his journey, and on the 27th of June
+arrived at Mariinsk. After sending part of his force to Nikolayefsk,
+he went on to Port Imperial where he met Admiral Poutiatine. They
+discussed the situation, and Poutiatine left for Japan on the <i>Diana</i>.</p>
+
+<p>Muravieff hurried back as he had come, and prepared another expedition
+which he took down the river in 1855. In that year he sent three
+thousand Cossacks, and five hundred colonists down the Amoor, together
+with horses, cattle, provisions, and military stores. This activity
+could not escape the Chinese who dispatched four officials to
+Nikolayefsk to protest against the invasion of their territory. They
+arrived in July, and were entertained by Muravieff with a review of
+his forces; after this hint he simply dismissed them. At this time the
+settlements which stood in such urgent need of supplies, were
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page271" name="page271"></a>(p. 271)</span> Mariinsk, which consisted of two log cabins, Nikolayefsk
+numbered ten, and Castries Bay had "four badly built huts."<a id="footnotetag13" name="footnotetag13"></a><a href="#footnote13">[13]</a></p>
+
+<p>In a remarkably short time we hear of the indefatigable Muravieff at
+St. Petersburg urging the annexation of the Amoor. He was opposed by
+the czar's ministers, but succeeded in convincing the emperor that
+China could offer no resistance, and that the powers need not hear of
+it until it was too late. Thus he secured large supplies of men and
+money. In the beginning of 1857, he was back at his post, and on the
+1st of June he dispatched Colonel Ushakof with six hundred men from
+Shilkinsk, and soon after followed him with a brigade of Cossack
+infantry and a regiment of cavalry, to garrison the forts which he
+constructed at strategic points.</p>
+
+<p>Seizing the opportunity of China's distress caused by the war with
+England and France, Muravieff demanded the cession of the Amoor
+Valley. The Chinese were helpless. On the 28th of May, 1858, a treaty
+was signed at Aigun, giving to Russia the left bank of the Amoor down
+to the Ussuri, and both banks below that confluent, besides the right
+to navigate the Sungari and Ussuri rivers. Russia gave absolutely
+nothing in return. Meanwhile Count Poutiatine had been sent from St.
+Petersburg to watch the allies and to profit by any blunder which they
+or the Chinese might make. Poutiatine stopped in Japan, claiming that
+the Koreans had given him the privilege of establishing a coaling
+station at Port Hamilton, but knowing that Great Britain would
+certainly investigate his claim, he did not press it. He tried to
+seize the Japanese <span class="pagenum"><a id="page272" name="page272"></a>(p. 272)</span> Island Tsushima in the southern entrance
+to the Japan Sea, and midway between Japan and Korea; but a polite and
+firm invitation from the British admiral to leave that island, and the
+admiral's insistence to remain until after he had left it, spoiled
+that little game. Poutiatine then proceeded to China where he proposed
+to help put down the Tai P'ing rebellion in return for the cession of
+Manchuria to Russia. This handsome offer was politely declined. Once
+again Muravieff hurried to St. Petersburg; upon his advice the newly
+acquired territory was officially annexed, and, by ukase of October
+31, joined to the littoral of the Sea of Okhotsk and Kamtschatka under
+the name of Maritime Province of Eastern Siberia, with Nikolayevsk as
+capital. Muravieff remained in supreme command.</p>
+
+<p>The tireless empire builder was again on the Pacific Coast in 1858. On
+May 21, he founded Blagovestchensk and, after descending the river,
+laid the foundation of Khabarofka, at the mouth of the Ussuri. In
+October he was back at Kiakhta, arranging for the postal service
+between St. Petersburg and the extreme east. On the 26th of August, he
+was created Count Amoorsky, or Count of the Amoor, a promotion which
+he had well earned. On the 31st of December, a remarkable ukase was
+published, beginning "Now that Russia has regained possession of this
+valuable region, etc." The entire territory of Eastern Siberia
+contained 740,922 square miles, a territory equal to that of all the
+Atlantic Coast States, together with Indiana, Ohio, West Virginia,
+Kentucky, Tennessee, Alabama, and Mississippi. This did not include
+the Amoor Province, which was placed under <span class="pagenum"><a id="page273" name="page273"></a>(p. 273)</span> the
+administration of a governor and eighteen officials, who received a
+combined annual salary of $18,873.60, of which the governor received
+$4680.</p>
+
+<p>Muravieff was back at his post in 1859. Both he and Poutiatine tried
+to induce the Japanese to give up Karafuto (Saghalien), but without
+success. At this time there was again trouble between China and the
+allied British and French, and when in 1860, a British-French force
+marched on Peking, Russia had sent another empire builder, General
+Ignatieff, to watch if he could not secure something. He did; when the
+allies entered Peking, Ignatieff sought Prince Kung and told him that
+the "foreign devils" would surely seize the country unless some strong
+power compelled them to leave. Russia was willing to do this, because
+she had always been fond of China; and all she asked was a strip of
+outlying territory of no value to China. Prince Kung gladly signed
+away the whole east coast of Manchuria, six hundred miles long; and
+Ignatieff redeemed his promise by visiting Lord Elgin and Baron Gros,
+the British and French plenipotentiaries. After paying them some
+flattering compliments, he made the remark that the Peiho river would
+freeze in a few days, and if they did not get out at once, they would
+have to stay all winter in Peking. The two gentlemen finished their
+business in a hurry, packed up, and left, but not without thanking
+Ignatieff for his kindness and reporting the matter to their
+government, which did not hear of the Russian's diplomacy until a year
+later. This is how Russia extended her empire on the Pacific Coast.</p>
+
+<p>For many years the efforts to secure the whole island of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page274" name="page274"></a>(p. 274)</span>
+Karafuto continued and Japan saw that war must follow unless a
+sacrifice was made. In 1875, Japan surrendered the island, in return
+for the Kurile group, but the Japanese treasured in their hearts the
+loss and disgrace. It was this which caused the assault upon the
+present czar, when he was traveling in Japan.</p>
+
+<p>In 1894 the war between Japan and China broke out, and when China,
+humbled, sued for peace, Japan demanded the cession of the Liaotung
+Peninsula,&mdash;where Port Arthur is located,&mdash;besides making other
+conditions. When this became known, Russia, after securing the help of
+Germany and France, gave Japan the "friendly advice," which was really
+a threat, not to take that peninsula. Japan, single-handed, could not
+fight the three powers, and gave way; but every Japanese, high or low,
+young or old, was determined to pay off Russia. They bought or built
+war vessels everywhere and increased their army. Russia did not like
+this, and proposed that Japan should take all the islands in the
+Pacific, the Philippines, Hawaii, Borneo, etc., and leave the
+continent of Asia to Russia. Japan declined, and went on building
+ships. In the end of 1898, Russia announced that she had "leased" the
+very Liaotung Peninsula which she had prevented Japan from taking.
+Japan understood, as the whole world did, that this "lease" meant
+possession. The Japanese statesmen did not protest, because there was
+but one protest that Russia would heed,&mdash;an appeal to arms. That was
+Japan's method when, in 1899, Alexander Pavloff, the Russian minister
+in Korea, secured from that government a concession in the port of
+Masampo, opening into the entrance <span class="pagenum"><a id="page275" name="page275"></a>(p. 275)</span> to the Japan Sea. Japan's
+demand was: Let Masampo go, or it means war. And Russia evacuated
+Masampo, while Pavloff was told that he might take a furlough. Then
+came 1900, the Boxer troubles and the international march upon Peking.
+Japanese officers took note of the Russian troops, leaving the
+Russians to do the same with their soldiers. Japan never ceased her
+preparations. In the latter part of 1901, Marquis Ito Hirobumi visited
+the United States and crossed over to England, where he proposed an
+offensive-defensive alliance. British statesmen hesitated, when Ito
+told them in plain terms that if no such treaty was concluded, he was
+authorized to go on to Russia, and make the best terms he could for
+his country.</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile Pavloff had returned to Seoul, the capital of Korea, and by
+means best known to Russian diplomats, was trying to gain a foothold
+on the Peninsula. Under the pretext of a timber concession, the
+Russians constructed a fort on the Korean side of the Yalu
+river,&mdash;where it was afterwards discovered by newspaper
+correspondents. Russia had secured control of Manchuria with its
+362,310 square miles and 11,250,000 population, and none of the powers
+dared protest. Japan was ready. Could she allow the "peaceful"
+absorption of Korea, as that of Manchuria had been accomplished? Safe
+in the offensive-defensive alliance with Great Britain, Japan
+approached Russia in a dignified manner, to be put off with vague
+replies. After six months of patience, Japan broke off diplomatic
+intercourse, and, as this is considered equal to a declaration of war,
+she struck and hit hard.</p>
+
+
+<span class="pagenum"><a id="page276" name="page276"></a>(p. 276)</span>
+<a id="img019" name="img019"></a>
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/img019.jpg" width="500" height="364" alt="St. Petersburg" title="St. Petersburg">
+</div>
+<p class="figcenter">St. Petersburg</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>XXX&mdash;RUSSIA LOSES HER PRESTIGE. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page277" name="page277"></a>(p. 277)</span></h2>
+
+
+<p>When, in February, 1904, the world was startled by the Japanese guns
+in the harbor of Chemulpo (Korea), one of Russia's well-known
+diplomats, speaking in defense of his country, said: "Ours has been a
+peaceful absorption." Another statesman, pleading for sympathy,
+remarked pathetically: "We were unprepared for war." The two advocates
+of Russia's cause spoke the truth, but they did not proclaim the whole
+truth.</p>
+
+<p>Ever since Muravieff Amoorsky began the peaceful absorption of
+Manchuria by seizing the coastline of that province, Russia has
+extended her dominions using no other weapon than her prestige, that
+is, the dread inspired by her name, power, and resources. Repeated
+protests from Great Britain remained unheeded, because the czar's
+government was convinced that they would not be emphasized by a resort
+to arms. The semi-civilized tribes of Central Asia were unable, of
+course, to oppose the Russian advance; and China was justly afraid of
+defying the great northern power. Thus the peaceful absorption
+continued with such ease that the Russian tchinovnik ended in
+believing in their country's prestige. Herein lies the principal cause
+of the astounding history of the war with Japan.</p>
+
+<p>Although <span class="pagenum"><a id="page278" name="page278"></a>(p. 278)</span> Russia repeatedly agreed to evacuate Manchuria, her
+actions in the construction of railways and other roads, the opening
+of mines, the enormous capital expended in creating a commercial
+emporium in Dalny, and her jealousy in excluding foreigners from that
+territory,&mdash;all this was ample evidence that nothing short of
+compulsion would cause her to withdraw. Besides, Alexander Pavloff,
+the Russian Minister in Korea, was anxious to emulate Count Cassini,
+his former chief at Peking. He was constantly plotting to secure a
+foothold in the Peninsula. In 1903, it was announced that a Russian
+company had obtained a timber concession on the Yalu River. A few
+months afterwards, some American newspaper correspondents with the
+Japanese army discovered the ruins of a Russian fort on that river,
+securely screened from indiscreet eyes, but in a fine position to
+control the passage. That was the timber concession.</p>
+
+<p>Russia's policy, therefore, was a serious menace to Japan. But Japan
+did not purpose to draw ridicule by unavailing protests. Feverishly
+the preparations for more emphatic action were continued; in the
+latter part of 1903, Japan was ready. Safe from a possible European
+intervention by her treaty with Great Britain, Japan reminded Russia
+of her promise to evacuate Manchuria on October 7, and requested an
+explanation for not keeping the pledge. Russia, with a blind faith in
+her prestige, replied that the affair did not concern Japan but China,
+whereupon Japan made a proposition concerning Manchuria and Korea
+which would be acceptable. With studied contempt replies from the czar
+were held back beyond <span class="pagenum"><a id="page279" name="page279"></a>(p. 279)</span> the time permitted by international
+courtesy. Moreover their tenor was not only unsatisfactory, but was
+also calculated to exasperate the proud Japanese. When the final
+preparations were made, Japan instructed her minister to St.
+Petersburg, to demand his passports,&mdash;an act equivalent to a
+declaration of war.</p>
+
+<p>The tchinovnik doubted their senses. Russia maintained that a
+severance of diplomatic relations did not necessarily imply an appeal
+to the sword, when the news flashed over the wires that the Russian
+war vessels Varyag and Koreyetz had been blown up at Chemulpo to
+escape being captured. The world was still marveling at Japan's
+audacity when it was informed that three other Russian war vessels had
+been disabled owing to a night torpedo attack under Admiral Togo.</p>
+
+<p>Why was the Russian fleet, numerically superior to that of Japan,
+divided? The answer is found in that fatal word: prestige. Pavloff in
+Korea had requested the presence of the two doomed ships, to keep the
+Japanese in awe. Admiral Stark lay under the guns of impregnable Port
+Arthur, trusting to the prestige, when the illusion vanished. There
+was still the Vladivostok squadron; it made an effort to induce Togo
+to leave Port Arthur by making a raid upon the north coast of Japan,
+but in vain. Beyond sinking a few unarmed merchantmen, nothing of
+importance was accomplished.</p>
+
+<p>The czar's choice to restore Russia's naval prestige, fell upon
+Admiral Makaroff. At about the same time, General Kuropatkin, the
+former Minister of War, was charged with punishing Japan for her
+insolence. His departure for the Far East was theatrical. After many
+genuflexions <span class="pagenum"><a id="page280" name="page280"></a>(p. 280)</span> before sacred eikons, he promised to restore
+Russia's prestige by dictating terms of peace in Tokyo.</p>
+
+<p>Makaroff was less enthusiastic, and perhaps more in earnest. It is
+asserted that he restored discipline in a sadly demoralized fleet. He
+was enticed out of Port Arthur's shelter by a small fleet of the
+enemy's cruisers sent out as a decoy. When he discovered Togo's
+ironclads he returned to port, but his flagship struck a mine at the
+entrance to Port Arthur and sunk. The Admiral, as well as his guest,
+the noted battle painter Verestchagin, perished.</p>
+
+<p>With Togo blockading Port Arthur and Admiral Kaminura guarding
+Vladivostok, the Japanese secured the freedom of the sea, and began to
+pour troops into Korea. This was greeted with acclamation by the
+tchinovnik who, after their naval misfortunes, claimed that the
+situation would soon be reversed by the army. Some Japanese soldiers
+were landed openly at Chemulpo, but the bulk went ashore in a
+well-concealed harbor south of the Yalu River. General Kuroki was in
+command.</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile Kuropatkin was in Manchuria busy organizing the army when
+not obstructed by Viceroy Alexieff. Such troops as he found were
+capable of rendering good service in hunting down Chinese brigands,
+but, as the sequel proved, the army had also been nurtured upon that
+most indigestible material, prestige. To the wonder of Europe,&mdash;and to
+a less degree of America,&mdash;Kuroki crossed the Yalu and sent the czar's
+dreaded soldiers flying before him. (May 1, 1904.)</p>
+
+<p>Once <span class="pagenum"><a id="page281" name="page281"></a>(p. 281)</span> more, and for the last time, did the Russian fleet at
+Port Arthur attempt a sortie. It failed, and its fate was sealed.</p>
+
+<p>While the wreckage of Russia's once proud fleet lay concealed in Port
+Arthur's inner basin, the Japanese, after scouring the waters to clear
+them from mines, landed troops on the Liaotung Peninsula, claimed by
+Japan after the war with China, but despoiled of it by Russia's
+peaceful absorption. In 1894, Port Arthur was taken in a day from the
+Chinese: the Russians defended the impregnable fortress for six
+months. "Our prestige demands that the enemy shall not capture Port
+Arthur," cried the tchinovnik, and Kuropatkin was ordered to General
+Stoessel's rescue. The attempt failed, and General Nogi could pursue
+the siege without being disturbed. (June 14-15, 1904.)</p>
+
+<p>A stolid, ignorant, and densely superstitious people was at war with a
+rejuvenated nation keenly alive to the power of education. That is the
+secret. Man for man, Russia would have won. But the resourcefulness of
+the little brown man more than offset the Russian's physical
+superiority. As the year 1905 dawned, the fall of Port Arthur was made
+known to the world.</p>
+
+<p>Slowly, but heralded by the marvels it would accomplish, the Baltic
+fleet under Rojestvensky sailed to Madagascar, welcome to whatever aid
+the French ally could bestow. Japan said nothing, but made a note of
+it. She cleaned and scraped her sea-worn, battle-scarred vessels,
+under the supervision of grim, silent Togo. Oyama, the Japanese
+commander-in-chief, reënforced by the veterans of Kuroki and Nogi, was
+playing with Kuropatkin until he <span class="pagenum"><a id="page282" name="page282"></a>(p. 282)</span> had the game in his hand.
+After ten days of hard fighting, the discomfited Russians made a
+masterly retreat to the Sha river, after evacuating Mukden, the cradle
+of the present Chinese dynasty, (August 26-September 4, 1904.)</p>
+
+<p>Kuropatkin deserved credit for the manner in which he extricated the
+remains of the czar's army. Oyama did not feel safe in following up
+the pursuit. His game was that of a skillful chess player. First make
+sure of the result with mathematical precision, then strike. The
+Japanese were deaf to the demand for brilliant dashes.</p>
+
+<p>After the battle of Liao-yang, the armies seemed idle so far as news
+from the front went. Oyama attacked his former antagonist on the
+Shakhe River and drove the discomfited Russians beyond Tie pass.
+General Kuropatkin was superseded by his former subordinate Liniévitch
+who, however, accomplished nothing to warrant his promotion.</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile the Baltic fleet left the hospitable shores of Madagascar,
+proclaiming its search for Togo, together with the determination to
+punish the impertinent Japanese. In the latter part of May, 1905,
+Admiral Rojestvensky made a dash for Vladivostok through the Tsu
+channel, the southern entrance to the Sea of Japan. Togo intercepted
+him, and a battle followed which, in its results, stands unique in the
+history of naval warfare. At a cost of three torpedo boats, 113
+killed, and 444 wounded, the Japanese sank 6 Russian battleships, 1
+coast defense vessel, 3 special service boats, and 3 destroyers,
+besides capturing 2 battleships, 2 coast defense vessels, and 1
+destroyer, The losses in killed were 8,550 and <span class="pagenum"><a id="page283" name="page283"></a>(p. 283)</span> over 3,000
+prisoners, among them Admirals Rojestvensky and Nebogatoff, were taken
+to Japan. As a result of this one-sided battle, Russia's naval power
+is broken. (May 27-28, 1905.)</p>
+
+<p>While President Theodore Roosevelt seized this opportunity to approach
+the belligerents in favor of peace, pointing out the hopelessness of
+continuing the struggle to Russia and appealing to Japan's
+magnanimity, the world was startled by the revolt of the Kniaz
+Potemkin, a first-class battleship of the Black Sea squadron. The
+mutineers found no support, and what might have proved a serious
+danger to the house of Romanoff, ended by the ship being sunk in
+Roumanian waters. She was recovered by the Russians.</p>
+
+<p>President Roosevelt's efforts toward bringing the two powers together,
+proved successful. Washington was agreed upon as the place for the
+negotiations, but the plenipotentiaries, Sergius Witte and Baron de
+Rosen acting for Russia, met Baron Komura and Minister Takahira, who
+represented Japan, at Portsmouth, N. H., where the United States acted
+as host.</p>
+
+<p>The incompatibility of Japan's demands and Russia's concessions on
+several occasions brought the plenipotentiaries on the verge of
+rupture. With the single-mindedness born of an unselfish purpose,
+President Roosevelt exerted all the personal influence he could bring
+to bear upon czar and emperor with the result that the victor gave the
+world an astounding lesson in magnanimity. Japan made peace possible
+by withdrawing her demands for indemnity and the cession of territory
+beyond that of which Russia had robbed her,&mdash;the southern half of the
+island <span class="pagenum"><a id="page284" name="page284"></a>(p. 284)</span> of Sakhalin, which will be once more Karafuto for the
+Japanese.</p>
+
+<p>The terms of the Treaty of Peace were agreed upon at Portsmouth on the
+29th of August 1905. The war had lasted from the 5th of February,
+1904, or 572 days. Russia paid in men 375,000, in money
+$1,075,000,000,&mdash;all for peaceful absorption and support of prestige.
+Cassini's shrewd move, ten years before, in robbing Japan of the
+Liaotung Peninsula and Port Arthur, has ended in Japan's obtaining
+possession of that key to Peking, with the promise of holding it
+beyond the possibility of recapture, until China recovers its manhood.
+The Treaty of Peace was signed September 5, at Portsmouth, N. H.</p>
+
+<p>What will be the effect of the war upon the Russian people? While the
+plenipotentiaries were discussing the terms of peace, autocracy
+launched a ukase calling for a consultative assembly. Russian
+thinkers, however, reflect that, so long as autocracy exists and the
+tchinovnik admit no other authority but that of the czar, another
+ukase may revoke the doubtful boon.</p>
+
+<p>No one knows what the morrow will bring, either to us or to the Slav.
+Yet it seems absurd to suppose that, after the lessons of corruption
+and incompetence of the present government, the educated Russians will
+remain quiescent while the great empire continues on its downward
+course. Mediævalism has come into contact with the spirit of the
+twentieth century, and has been found wanting. It seems as if the dawn
+of a new era for Russia is at hand.</p>
+
+
+
+
+<h2>INDEX. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page285" name="page285"></a>(p. 285)</span></h2>
+
+
+<div class="left05">
+<p>A</p>
+
+
+<p>Abdul Aziz,
+<a href="#page231">231</a>.<br>
+
+ Abdul Hamid,
+<a href="#page232">232</a>.<br>
+
+ Alexander I, the Well-beloved,
+<a href="#page197">197</a>.<br>
+
+ Alexander II, the Liberator,
+<a href="#page218">218</a>.<br>
+
+ Alexander III, the Peasants' Friend,
+<a href="#page241">241</a>.<br>
+
+ Alexander of Battenberg,
+<a href="#page246">246</a>.<br>
+
+ Alexander Nevski,
+<a href="#page060">60</a>,
+<a href="#page069">69</a>.<br>
+
+ Alexis Michaelovitch,
+<a href="#page141">141</a>.<br>
+
+ Alexis, son of Peter the Great,
+<a href="#page170">170</a>.<br>
+
+ Andrew Bogolioubski,
+<a href="#page054">54</a>.<br>
+
+ Anne Ivanovna, Czarina,
+<a href="#page175">175</a>.<br>
+
+ Area of Russia,
+<a href="#page014">14</a>.<br>
+
+ Armenians,
+<a href="#page255">255</a>.<br>
+
+ Askold,
+<a href="#page030">30</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">B</p>
+
+<p>Baskak, Tartar tax collector,
+<a href="#page071">71</a>.<br>
+
+ Bati, Khan of the Golden Horde,
+<a href="#page065">65</a>.<br>
+
+ Battle of the Oka,
+<a href="#page102">102</a>.<br>
+
+ Boundaries of Russia,
+<a href="#page015">15</a>.<br>
+
+ Boyard, noble,
+<a href="#page056">56</a>.<br>
+
+ Byzantium, former name of Constantinople.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">C</p>
+
+<p>Catherine I, wife of Peter the Great,
+<a href="#page169">169</a>,
+<a href="#page171">171</a>,
+<a href="#page173">173</a>.<br>
+
+ Catherine II, the Great,
+<a href="#page183">183</a>.<br>
+
+ Caucasus, The
+<a href="#page264">264</a>.<br>
+
+ Chouïski, Andrew,
+<a href="#page112">112</a>.<br>
+
+ Chouïski, Czar,
+<a href="#page134">134</a>.<br>
+
+ Christianity,
+<a href="#page036">36</a>,
+<a href="#page042">42</a>.<br>
+
+ Climate of Russia,
+<a href="#page018">18</a>.<br>
+
+ Constantine,
+<a href="#page058">58</a>.<br>
+
+ Council of Florence, attempt to unite the Roman and Greek Churches,
+<a href="#page060">60</a>.<br>
+
+ Crimea The, annexed,
+<a href="#page190">190</a>.<br>
+
+ Crimean War,
+<a href="#page215">215</a>.<br>
+
+ Cyril,
+<a href="#page036">36</a>.<br>
+
+ Czar, king,
+<a href="#page112">112</a>.<br>
+
+ Czargrad, city of the king.<br>
+
+ Czarina, wife of the czar.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">D</p>
+
+<p>Dagh Bog the sun god,
+<a href="#page020">20</a>.<br>
+
+ Diak, secretary,
+<a href="#page107">107</a>.<br>
+
+ Dir,
+<a href="#page030">30</a>.<br>
+
+ Dmitri Donskoï,
+<a href="#page087">87</a>.<br>
+
+ Dnieper,
+<a href="#page020">20</a>.<br>
+
+ Donskoï, of the Don, surname of Dmitri,
+<a href="#page091">91</a>.<br>
+
+ Douma, council of nobles,
+<a href="#page131">131</a>.<br>
+
+ Drujina, body-guard,
+<a href="#page032">32</a>.<br>
+
+ Düna,
+<a href="#page020">20</a>.<br>
+
+ Dvor, inclosure,
+<a href="#page027">27</a>.<br>
+
+ Dwina,
+<a href="#page020">20</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">E</p>
+
+<p>Eikon, image of a saint,
+<a href="#page044">44</a>,
+<a href="#page055">55</a>.<br>
+
+ Elizabeth, Queen of England,
+<a href="#page118">118</a>.<br>
+
+ Elizabeth, Czarina,
+<a href="#page178">178</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">F</p>
+
+<p>Feodor (Theodore), Son of Ivan the Terrible,
+<a href="#page129">129</a>.<br>
+
+ Feodor Alexievitch,
+<a href="#page144">144</a>.<br>
+
+ Finland,
+<a href="#page026">26</a>.<br>
+
+ Finns,
+<a href="#page026">26</a>.<br>
+
+ Frederick the Great,
+<a href="#page188">188</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">G</p>
+
+<p>Galitch, Southwest Russia,
+<a href="#page061">61</a>.<br>
+
+ Gedimin,
+<a href="#page080">80</a>.<br>
+
+ Genghis Khan,
+<a href="#page064">64</a>.<br>
+
+ George Dolgorouki,
+<a href="#page051">51</a>.<br>
+
+ George, Grand Duke of Moscow,
+<a href="#page083">83</a>.<br>
+
+ Godounof, Boris, Czar,
+<a href="#page129">129</a>.<br>
+
+ Gosti, guest, Russian for merchant,
+<a href="#page124">124</a>.<br>
+
+ Goubernii, Government or province,
+<a href="#page226">226</a>.<br>
+
+ Greece, independence of,
+<a href="#page209">209</a>.<br>
+
+ Greek Church,
+<a href="#page042">42</a>.<br>
+
+ Gustavus Wasa,
+<a href="#page119">119</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">H</p>
+
+<p>Hetman, chief of Cossacks.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">I</p>
+
+<p>Iarlikh, patent or written authorisation from the khan,
+<a href="#page073">73</a>.<br>
+
+ Iaropolk,
+<a href="#page041">41</a>.<br>
+
+ Iaroslaf II,
+<a href="#page044">44</a>.<br>
+
+ Igor, son of Rurik,
+<a href="#page030">30</a>,
+<a href="#page032">32</a>.<br>
+
+ Iouri, George,
+<a href="#page111">111</a>.<br>
+
+ Isiaslaf,
+<a href="#page050">50</a>.<br>
+
+ Ivan Kalita,
+<a href="#page085">85</a>.<br>
+
+ Ivan II,
+<a href="#page088">88</a>.<br>
+
+ Ivan III, the Great,
+<a href="#page097">97</a>.<br>
+
+ Ivan IV, the Terrible,
+<a href="#page111">111</a>.<br>
+
+ Ivan Alexievitch,
+<a href="#page145">145</a>.<br>
+
+ Ivan Ivanovitch,
+<a href="#page177">177</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">J</p>
+
+<p>Jagellon,
+<a href="#page080">80</a>.<br>
+
+ Jews, persecution of the,
+<a href="#page242">242</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">K</p>
+
+<p>Kalita, alms-bag,
+<a href="#page087">87</a>.<br>
+
+ Kazan,
+<a href="#page119">119</a>.<br>
+
+ Khanates, the,
+<a href="#page265">265</a>.<br>
+
+ Kholop, slave,
+<a href="#page123">123</a>.<br>
+
+ Kief,
+<a href="#page041">41</a>.<br>
+
+ Kirghiz Steppe,
+<a href="#page264">264</a>.<br>
+
+ Kniaz, duke, defender, prince,
+<a href="#page030">30</a>,
+<a href="#page045">45</a>.<br>
+
+ Kosciusko, Thaddeus,
+<a href="#page191">191</a>.<br>
+
+ Kostroma,
+<a href="#page019">19</a>.<br>
+
+ Kublaï Khan,
+<a href="#page068">68</a>.<br>
+
+ Krestianine, true Christian, surname given to the peasants during the Tartar yoke.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">L</p>
+
+<p>Leo the Deacon, historian,
+<a href="#page037">37</a>,
+<a href="#page039">39</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">M</p>
+
+<p>Mangou, grandson of Genghis Khan,
+<a href="#page067">67</a>.<br>
+
+ Mazeppa,
+<a href="#page147">147</a>,
+<a href="#page158">158</a>.<br>
+
+ Methodius,
+<a href="#page036">36</a>.<br>
+
+ Metropolitan, Head of the Greek Church,
+<a href="#page056">56</a>.<br>
+
+ Michael, Grand Duke of Tver,
+<a href="#page075">75</a>.<br>
+
+ Michael, first czar of the present dynasty,
+<a href="#page135">135</a>.<br>
+
+ Mindvog,
+<a href="#page079">79</a>.<br>
+
+ Minine, Kouzma, a Russian patriot,
+<a href="#page134">134</a>.<br>
+
+ Mir, communal village,
+<a href="#page027">27</a>.<br>
+
+ Moscow, Burning of,
+<a href="#page202">202</a>.<br>
+
+ Moujik, lit. Manikin, contemptuous word for peasant,
+<a href="#page034">34</a>.<br>
+
+ Mstislaf the Bold,
+<a href="#page058">58</a>.<br>
+
+ Mstislaf the Brave,
+<a href="#page055">55</a>.<br>
+
+ Murad V,
+<a href="#page231">231</a>.<br>
+
+ Muravieff Amoorsky,
+<a href="#page267">267</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">N</p>
+
+<p>Namiestnik, ducal delegate,
+<a href="#page106">106</a>.<br>
+
+ Napoleon I,
+<a href="#page197">197</a>.<br>
+
+ Napoleon III,
+<a href="#page213">213</a>,
+<a href="#page229">229</a>.<br>
+
+ Nicholas I,
+<a href="#page207">207</a>.<br>
+
+ Nicholas II,
+<a href="#page251">251</a>.<br>
+
+ Nicon, Reformer,
+<a href="#page144">144</a>.<br>
+
+ Nihilism,
+<a href="#page234">234</a>.<br>
+
+ Nestor, Russian historian,
+<a href="#page029">29</a>,
+<a href="#page032">32</a>.<br>
+
+ Novgorod, Republic of,
+<a href="#page029">29</a>,
+<a href="#page097">97</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">O</p>
+
+<p>Oktaï, khan,
+<a href="#page069">69</a>.<br>
+
+ Olga,
+<a href="#page042">42</a>.<br>
+
+ Olgerd,
+<a href="#page080">80</a>.<br>
+
+ Oleg,
+<a href="#page030">30</a>,
+<a href="#page041">41</a>.<br>
+
+ Olmutz, Battle of,
+<a href="#page198">198</a>.<br>
+
+ Oulogenia, Code of Laws under Ivan III.,
+<a href="#page105">105</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">P</p>
+
+<p>Pan-Germanism,
+<a href="#page246">246</a>.<br>
+
+ Pan-Slavism,
+<a href="#page245">245</a>.<br>
+
+ Paul I,
+<a href="#page194">194</a>.<br>
+
+ Peace Congress,
+<a href="#page256">256</a>.<br>
+
+ Peipus, Lake, Battle on the Ice,
+<a href="#page070">70</a>.<br>
+
+ Perun, god of thunder,
+<a href="#page027">27</a>.<br>
+
+ Peter the Great,
+<a href="#page145">145</a>.<br>
+
+ Peter II,
+<a href="#page174">174</a>.<br>
+
+ Peter III,
+<a href="#page179">179</a>.<br>
+
+ Philarete, Metropolitan, father of the first Romanof,
+<a href="#page135">135</a>.<br>
+
+ Plemia, confederacy of tribes,
+<a href="#page028">28</a>.<br>
+
+ Poland, Partition of,
+<a href="#page188">188</a>.<br>
+
+ Poliessa, forest region,
+<a href="#page020">20</a>.<br>
+
+ Poniatowski, Stanislas,
+<a href="#page187">187</a>.<br>
+
+ Portsmouth, Peace treaty at,
+<a href="#page284">284</a>.<br>
+
+ Possadnik, burgomaster or commandant,
+<a href="#page052">52</a>.<br>
+
+ Prestige, Russia loses her,
+<a href="#page277">277</a>.<br>
+
+ Pskof, Republic of,
+<a href="#page051">51</a>.<br>
+
+ Pultowa, Battle of,
+<a href="#page081">81</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">R</p>
+
+<p>Raskol, plur. Raskolnik, Religious Madmen, opponents to Nicon's reforms,
+<a href="#page146">146</a>.<br>
+
+ Roman, Duke of Volhynia,
+<a href="#page061">61</a>.<br>
+
+ Romanof, Anastasia, wife of Ivan the Terrible,
+<a href="#page114">114</a>.<br>
+
+ Romanof, Michael, elected czar,
+<a href="#page135">135</a>.<br>
+
+ Rurik,
+<a href="#page029">29</a>.<br>
+
+ Russkaïa Pravda, Russian Right,
+<a href="#page045">45</a>.<br>
+
+ Ryndis, young nobles,
+<a href="#page110">110</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">S</p>
+
+<p>St. Petersburg founded,
+<a href="#page168">168</a>.<br>
+
+ Saraï, Capital of the Golden Horde,
+<a href="#page068">68</a>.<br>
+
+ Schamyl,
+<a href="#page209">209</a>.<br>
+
+ Scythians,
+<a href="#page023">23</a>.<br>
+
+ Simeon, first Grand Duke of All the Russias,
+<a href="#page088">88</a>.<br>
+
+ Sineous,
+<a href="#page029">29</a>.<br>
+
+ Slavophil, Friend of Slavs,
+<a href="#page230">230</a>.<br>
+
+ Slavs,
+<a href="#page025">25</a>.<br>
+
+ Smerd, boor, lout.<br>
+
+ Sophia, Autocrat of All the Russias,
+<a href="#page145">145</a>.<br>
+
+ Starost, elder or mayor,
+<a href="#page052">52</a>.<br>
+
+ Streltsi, national guard,
+<a href="#page121">121</a>.<br>
+
+ Stri Bog, god of the winds,
+<a href="#page027">27</a>.<br>
+
+ Sviatopolk,
+<a href="#page044">44</a>,
+<a href="#page049">49</a>.<br>
+
+ Sviatoslaf,
+<a href="#page035">35</a>,
+<a href="#page041">41</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">T</p>
+
+<p>Tamerlane,
+<a href="#page092">92</a>.<br>
+
+ Tartars or Tatars,
+<a href="#page063">63</a>.<br>
+
+ Tartartchina, Tartar Yoke,
+<a href="#page073">73</a>.<br>
+
+ Tcherné. Black people, name applied to the people by the nobles,
+<a href="#page077">77</a>.<br>
+
+ Tchélobitié, Beating of the forehead, i. e., petition,
+<a href="#page123">123</a>.<br>
+
+ Tchin, plur. Tchinovnik, lit. Gentlemen, now Officials,
+<a href="#page164">164</a>.<br>
+
+ Tilsit, meeting at,
+<a href="#page199">199</a>.<br>
+
+ Transcaspia,
+<a href="#page264">264</a>.<br>
+
+ Treaty of Berlin,
+<a href="#page234">234</a>.<br>
+
+ Treaty of Paris,
+<a href="#page220">220</a>.<br>
+
+ Truvor,
+<a href="#page029">29</a>.<br>
+
+ Turkestan,
+<a href="#page264">264</a>.<br>
+
+ Turks,
+<a href="#page094">94</a>,
+<a href="#page231">231</a>.<br>
+
+ Turkey, war with,
+<a href="#page232">232</a>.<br>
+
+ Tysatski, commandant of the militia,
+<a href="#page052">52</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">U</p>
+
+<p>Ukase, imperial edict equal to law Ural Mountains,
+<a href="#page018">18</a>.<br>
+
+ Uzbeck, Khan,
+<a href="#page068">68</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">V</p>
+
+<p>Valdai Plateau,
+<a href="#page019">19</a>.<br>
+
+ Varingians, Norsemen,
+<a href="#page029">29</a>.<br>
+
+ Vassili the Blind,
+<a href="#page093">93</a>.<br>
+
+ Vetché, Municipal Council,
+<a href="#page027">27</a>.<br>
+
+ Vitovt,
+<a href="#page081">81</a>.<br>
+
+ Vladimir Monomachus,
+<a href="#page049">49</a>.<br>
+
+ Vladimir, Saint,
+<a href="#page041">41</a>.<br>
+
+ Voievod, governor of a fortress,
+<a href="#page033">33</a>.<br>
+
+ Volga,
+<a href="#page119">119</a>.<br>
+
+ Voloss, god of the flocks,
+<a href="#page027">27</a>.<br>
+
+ Volost, county or canton,
+<a href="#page028">28</a>.<br>
+
+ Vsevolod,
+<a href="#page057">57</a>.</p>
+
+
+<p class="p2">Z</p>
+
+<p>Zemstvo, Assembly,
+<a href="#page226">226</a>.<br>
+
+ Zimisces, John,
+<a href="#page038">38</a>.</p></div>
+
+
+<p><a id="footnote1" name="footnote1"></a>
+<b>Footnote 1:</b> Karamsin.<a href="#footnotetag1">(Back)</a></p>
+
+<p><a id="footnote2" name="footnote2"></a>
+<b>Footnote 2:</b> Karamsin.<a href="#footnotetag2">(Back)</a></p>
+
+<p><a id="footnote3" name="footnote3"></a>
+<b>Footnote 3:</b> Mstislaf the Brave was buried in the church of St.
+Sophia.<a href="#footnotetag3">(Back)</a></p>
+
+<p><a id="footnote4" name="footnote4"></a>
+<b>Footnote 4:</b> Kostomarof.<a href="#footnotetag4">(Back)</a></p>
+
+<p><a id="footnote5" name="footnote5"></a>
+<b>Footnote 5:</b> Ta, great; hence: the Great
+Tzis.<a href="#footnotetag5">(Back)</a></p>
+
+<p><a id="footnote6" name="footnote6"></a>
+<b>Footnote 6:</b> Where Kalouga now stands.<a href="#footnotetag6">(Back)</a></p>
+
+<p><a id="footnote7" name="footnote7"></a>
+<b>Footnote 7:</b> Planus Corpinius.<a href="#footnotetag7">(Back)</a></p>
+
+<p><a id="footnote8" name="footnote8"></a>
+<b>Footnote 8:</b> Karamsin.<a href="#footnotetag8">(Back)</a></p>
+
+<p><a id="footnote9" name="footnote9"></a>
+<b>Footnote 9:</b> Wallace.<a href="#footnotetag9">(Back)</a></p>
+
+<p><a id="footnote10" name="footnote10"></a>
+<b>Footnote 10:</b> Priests.<a href="#footnotetag10">(Back)</a></p>
+
+<p><a id="footnote11" name="footnote11"></a>
+<b>Footnote 11:</b> See p. <a href="#page209">209</a><a href="#footnotetag11">(Back)</a></p>
+
+<p><a id="footnote12" name="footnote12"></a>
+<b>Footnote 12:</b> Parliamentary Papers, Central Asia. 1873.<a href="#footnotetag12">(Back)</a></p>
+
+<p><a id="footnote13" name="footnote13"></a>
+<b>Footnote 13:</b> Ravenstein, Russians on the Amoor.<a href="#footnotetag13">(Back)</a></p>
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+<pre>
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Story of Russia, by R. Van Bergen
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE STORY OF RUSSIA ***
+
+***** This file should be named 20880-h.htm or 20880-h.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/2/0/8/8/20880/
+
+Produced by Barbara Tozier, Bill Tozier, Christine P.
+Travers and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
+http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+http://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at http://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit http://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ http://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
+
+</pre>
+
+</body>
+</html>
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img001.jpg b/20880-h/images/img001.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7d066b
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img001.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img001bg.jpg b/20880-h/images/img001bg.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..7687c19
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img001bg.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img002.jpg b/20880-h/images/img002.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..ad9f1a0
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img002.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img002bg.jpg b/20880-h/images/img002bg.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..9fb615d
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img002bg.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img003.jpg b/20880-h/images/img003.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..dd571d7
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img003.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img004.jpg b/20880-h/images/img004.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..85e42a1
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img004.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img005.jpg b/20880-h/images/img005.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..3c82646
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img005.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img006.jpg b/20880-h/images/img006.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..2f70779
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img006.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img007.jpg b/20880-h/images/img007.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..e3796fc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img007.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img008.jpg b/20880-h/images/img008.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..a6ed85f
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img008.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img009.jpg b/20880-h/images/img009.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..96a3281
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img009.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img010.jpg b/20880-h/images/img010.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..5aa6d62
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img010.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img011.jpg b/20880-h/images/img011.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d94b388
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img011.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img012.jpg b/20880-h/images/img012.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..b1f40c3
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img012.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img013.jpg b/20880-h/images/img013.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..bf2ceed
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img013.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img014.jpg b/20880-h/images/img014.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..bdcc585
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img014.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img015.jpg b/20880-h/images/img015.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..19e05d9
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img015.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img016.jpg b/20880-h/images/img016.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..0657c4d
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img016.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img017.jpg b/20880-h/images/img017.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..9422338
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img017.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img017bg.jpg b/20880-h/images/img017bg.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..f1ca01b
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img017bg.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img018.jpg b/20880-h/images/img018.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..1936c15
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img018.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/20880-h/images/img019.jpg b/20880-h/images/img019.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..88890c0
--- /dev/null
+++ b/20880-h/images/img019.jpg
Binary files differ